r
#^
^t iUe ®bw%ta| ^
%:
PRINCETON, N. J.
%
Presented by Vr'o-^"T\-?Av^\ V(:AvvS)vA<(2> ^"IDTX),
BS 244^8 .86 S3 1868
Scott, W. A. 1813-1885.
The centurions of the Gospe
•,i
i'C-i>-*^''-
THE
Centurions of the Gospel :
WITH DISC0Ui:6ES ON
"THE CHOICE OP A PROFESSION," "OUR
RESPONSIBILITY FOR OUR FELLOW MEN," AND THE
"PIETY AND PATRIOTLS.M OF PRAYING FOR
OUR RULERS."
BY/
EEV. W. A. SCOTT, D. D.,
PASTOR OF TUB FOKTY-SECOXI) STREET PUESBYTEKIAN CUURCU, N£W YORK.
SECOXD EDITION-.
NEW YORK:
AXSON I). F. RANDOLPH,
710 BROADWAY.
1808.
Kntcrod ftccording to Act of Coii^toss, in tlio year 1867,
ijy ki:v. w. a. SCOTT, 1). n,
In the Ck-rU^s Ollico of tlio Disliicl Court of tho Uuitod States for the
Bouthcni District oi New Yurk.
PEEFAGE
A m:w edition of the following Discourses
being call(;d for, it lias seemed Ix^st to change
the title from ^' The Church in the Army; or
the Four Centurions," to one tliat expresses
more satis fVu^torily tlie nature of the volume.
The aim of these Discourses is, to show that
tlie Gospel is suited for all sorts of men in all
the circinnstanccs of lift'. The Four ClenturionH
are selrctcd as ('xami)l('S from the military pro-
fession, and the other Discourses are an attempt
to ilhistrate great Bibhi principh'S, and teach
h^ssons and iMCulcate duti(^s which are of the
givatcst iniportanc(r in all tlMM'.allings or pnrsuits
of life, how>?/?;^/>7/^?rZ
from letters and journals that Avere never written
with any thought of their i)ublication. They
have said, after looking over such works : " If
PREFACE. Vll
this is tlie piety of soldiers, and the way it is to
be regarded, we want none of it." It is, there-
fore, witli great phuisun; we are able to say that
the biograj)]iical sketches of General Ilavelock,
that have fallen under our observation, are of a
decidedly healthful and manly tone. He was
"every inch a soldier and every inch a Cluis-
tian." No man in the British Army possessed
more common sense, persevering mental applica-
tion, or great(?r moni,! and physical courage.
His life seems to us likely to make a favorable
impression on the Army and Navy, and on the
educated young men of our day generally. We
lik(3 it just for the same reason that we would
have our Sabbath-school children earnestly en-
gaged in committing the Creed, the Ten Com-
mandments, the Lord's Prayer, the Psalms, and
the Gospel of John, to memory, rather than that
they should distract and weaken their tender
minds, by fictions and the hoi-house literature
that it is so much the fashion of our day to
"cram" into our Sunday-schools. We can,
however, recommend, and with much confidence,
such works as the "Life of Ilavelock," Cecil's
"Remains," Scott's " Force of Truth," Wilber-
force's "Practical View," Henry's "Anxious
Inquirer," and Dr. A. Alexander's "Thoughts
on Religious Experience."
Vm PEEFACE.
It will be seen in the course of this volume also,
that the author had an intimate acquaintance
with the habits and sentiments of General
Andrew Jackson, of Tennessee, being his Pastor
for some years after he retired from Washing-
ton, and that he believes he was ''the most reli-
gious President we have ever had."
This volume is a labor of love. Born amid
the scenes of frontier life, and familiar with
Indian wars from youth, and having consider-
able knowledge of the American Army, and
having many personal friends among its olRcers,'
this work has been long meditated by the author.
One of his earliest friends, whose name is em-
balmed in his heart, is an officer in the Army.
We have known him now for a lifetime, until he
is near the head of his profession, and we hesi-
tate not to say, that he is one of the most con-
sistently pious and intelligent men we have ever
known. But as he yet lives to adorn his profes-
sion, we forbear to publish his name, for we
know that his feelings are as delicate as his cour-
age is exalted. We remember distinctly his
religious habits in the camp and in the barracks.
We know that it was his custom, whenever cir-
cumstances would at all permit it, to read a
chapter every day in the Bible, with Dr. Thomas
Scott's notes, and to write out a synopsis of
PEEFACE. IX
them ; and on the Lord' s day, if no chaplain was
present, he conducted a religious service for his
men.
In these Discourses, I have not sought novel-
ties, but to present the Truth, which is in order to
salvation as it lies in the brief histories under
examination. After years of thought and read-
ing, it is not easy to analyze one' s store of
knowledge, and name with absolute accuracy
the writers to whom we may be indebted, in one
way or another, for facts and illustrations. I
have consulted with some diligence, and, as far
as I deemed it needful for my purpose, have
exhausted such commentators in French, Latin,
and Greek, and partially in German, as well as
in English, as I have had access to, or have con-
sidered worth the time required for studying
them. The historical facts of the volume are
taken from most reliable sources, and I hope will
be found to be correct. It is, also, but justice to
say, that while the authors and commentaries on
the Scriptures, whom I have designed to honor
in this acknowledgment just made, or made in
the progress of the volume itself, have embraced
the lives of the warriors of the Bible, and have
presented quite extensive notes on the Pour
CENTURioivrs, of whose conversion we have some
account, as I think, in the New Testament ; still,
X PREFACE.
as far as my information extends, there is no
work like this volume — no worTi that attempts
to give a commentary, on the character and
conversion to Christ of the Roman Centurions,
as written for us by the sacred penmen, iltus-
irated by reference to the lives of pious men in
the military prof ess ion of modern times.
The author' s great aim in gratefully recording
the power of the Gospel, and making mention of
the evidences of true piety, furnished by the
Centurions, and by soldiers of more recent times,
is to awaken in the breasts of his young country-
men the conviction, that eminent piety is not a
real hindrance to success, in any of the honor-
able pursuits of life, but is a decided advantage
in them all, and that even in the military profes-
sion, it is a Bible truth, that true religion is the
way to make "'the best of both icorlds.^'' His
prayer for young men, seeing "they are strong,"
is that they may be "as plants of the Lord,
grown up in their youth," and it is onlj^ the
more earnest, because the times are evil, and the
night of death approaches when no man can
work.
W. A. gCOTT.
New York, December, 1867.
CONTENTS.
PAQt;
Introdcction 19
Ruskin's prophecy — " Sons of war " may be subjects of " the
Prince of Peace," when war is justifiable, "which is rarely the
case — Rev. Mr. Boardman's *• Higher Life" — General Ilalleck's
answer to Dr. Waylaud — Jehu the Baptist style of John Knox
— Tlie Gospel is Peace.
I. — The Ckmlrion of Capkrxacm 25
1. The Coming to Jesus. — The time of this miracle — The scene
of it -The site of Ctiperuaum — Fate of the city — The Centu-
rion was a lloinan officer — Why he c^me to Jesus — Mattliew
and Luke reconciled— Proverbial liberality of soldiers and
sailors — The sick *' servant" — His disease.
IL — The Ckxturiox of Capernaum continued 38
2. The peculiar Excellence of his Faith. — Our Lord's prompt
reply to the call for help — We must trust our senses — Faith,
what is it? — Our Lord's wonder at the greatness of the Cen-
turion's faith — How it was distinguished — He had been brought
up in heathenism — He was a soldier — The mihtary profession
has given many illustrious examples of piety — Havelock.
Ill —The Cknturion of Capernaum continued 49
3. Evidences of this CenturioiCs Faith. — Was kind to his servant
— Remarkable completeness of this soldier's character — Re-
formation not always a true conversion — " Havelock'' s saints "
Chrisuaiiity is not built out of the ruins of liumanity, manhood
or civilization — Insubordination a crying evil in our day — The
Centurion's remarkable humility : " I am not worthy " — Did
not assume with Anglo-Saxon-like pride to be better than any
other people — He makes a true soldier's brief, prompt profes-
sion of his faith — Mistaken ideas of true manliness or indepen-
dence of character — Nothing " fawning " or corrupt in this
soldier's humility — Our Lord not only granted his request, but
entered into his heart — His faith distinguished for its inde-
pendence of the senses— And also because it disregarded his
Xll CONTENTS.
Roman prejudices against the Jews— His faith assumed a mili-
tary form.
IV. — The Cknturion of Capernaum continued 60
4. TJiis Roman officer still preaching the Gospel. — First, here
we have our Lord's perfect humanity — Secondly, we should
not indulge in general and indiscriminating charges upon
classes and professions^ races or callings — Xot necessary for
soldiers and sailors to swear, even if the Army in Flanders
did — Havclock's example — His prayer-meeting in the heathen
temple of Shivey Dagoon — A picture wanted of his Rangoon
pagoda — Lord Bentick's testimony in favor of Ilavelock and
his '■'saints"— Some professioiis are more favorable than others,
but none are excused from being pious — Peter no doubt a
saint in heaven, whether he was a pope or not — Arnold's
treachery does not prove "Washington a hypocrite — Tldrdly,
let us be more charitable — The Gospel kingdom is open to all
nations — Fourthly, this miracle a clear reality — Fifthly, dis-
advantages enhance the value of success — Sixthly, our Lord
estimates a man according to his faith — Seventhly, natural for
the Centurion's faith to run in the channel of his profession —
Bis military science taught him faith in an invisible presence
— So the "wise men" and the "shepherds" were led to
Christ in their own ciilling— 77eans are to be provided, and then everything done we
~ can do, according to God's own appointed ways, to make them
cftectual — Case of savage nations illustrated — 3. Reasons why
we should strive to save our fellow men. Our own expe-
rience — We all have influence — If converted to God they are
happy — This is the way also to promote our own happiness —
Great eftbrts called for in behalf of our new States and cities,
and for our soldiers and sea-going men.
REFLECTIONS.
1. Have we realized what it is for a soul to be saved or lost? —
2. If our fellow men now perish, it will be after the most pre-
ciousi provisions have been made for their salvation — 3. It is
someining to us that they are ready to be slain —We are under
tremendous obligations — Parents, teachers, officers appealed
to.
XIII. — Thk Piety and Patriotism of Praying for our Civil
Rulers 351
Political fathers under the same rule as our spiritual and natural
fathers — The apostle's teaching on this subject— God still Su-
preme Governor — True religion the basis of all order and vir-
tue—men prone to extremes — Xo union of Christ with Ctesar —
The powers that be are ordained of God — Illustrations— It is
an act of true patriotism and of the most disinterested loyalty
to pray for our civil rulers — Hebrews and early Christians did
so— Fear of God and a proper regard for man are found to-
gether — Good rulers desire the prayers of the pious— The
Church of God has always taught and practised this duty — Va-
rious authorities cited from Barrow, Chrysostom, Origen and
others — The Catechism teaches it — Common charity requires
XVlll CONTEl^TS.
it — The hnimn prone to carry us astray — Onr civil rulers need
oiir sympatliy and prayers — Their post is ditVu-iilt and daii.i;er-
ous — They aie a part of ourselves -Our welfare depends upon
them— Prayer is :ui essential part of every man's piety.
XIV.— CniiiSTiAN Soi.oiKr>s 305
Colonel Gardiner — His luavery, patriotism, piety and death —
Captain Vicars — llis activity as a Christian, noble beai-ini^ in
battle and death at Sebastopol — Marshal Snwarrow — riussia's
greatest general — llis lieroisnj, devotion and inlluence ONCr his
soldiers — General llavelock— Sum of his character as a soldier
and Christian — fiOni;; waiting for his work — Well done at last
— His vietoiii's I)i!igenee in accpiirin;^ knowledge — A noble
example lor young oiHeers — The military profession unt in
itself sinful — lI;'.velock\s characft-r and Christian death — Gene-
ral Jackson — riiny's reinaik— Autiior's oi)p()rtnn!ty to study
his character Wali)ol(''s ruK' a failure — (ieneral Jackson's
uioral courage and estimate of it in ])ublic men — His attain-
ments — Uis letters — Devoiioti to his friends —His early reli-
gious education — Never altogether lost — Becomes a commuu?
ing church member — The author his pastor at the Hermitage
— IHs attendance at the Lord's supper — Judge Gayarre's
sketch — Dilliculty of doing justice to his memory — Coljbett's
estimate of General Jackson — His fame will grow greener in
coming years— Oft allusions to the help of Providence — His
habit of reading the Bible — His pious reflections oa the death
of a friend and his own failing health — Dr. Esselman's letter
describing his death — The closing scene.
XV. — TuK Army of tiik Dkad still Spkakino 425
Tiie holy catholic Church — Every age and generation connected
— Aim of this volume— All great men pious — Hlustrations from
Homer's heroes — God works by lit agents — Alexander's love
for the Iliad — Domestic purity and attachment not inconsistent
with the loftiest heroism — The Centurions— Havelock — Jack-
son — Such men are to be imitated -Faith in Christ necessary
— Our religion must be confessed — Soldiers must try to do
good — Catholicity of feeling characteristic of brave men —
Havelock not a close commmiionist — Unfavorable circuin-
Btanccs may be overcome — Conclusion.
introduction:
SOLDIERS MAY BE PIOUS.
•'Every inch a soldier and every inch a Christian." — Loud Hakdinge's Ellogt
ON Gen. Havklock.
From an intimate acquaintance with Ccneral Jackf-on's habits and sentiments, I
have no doubt the Uev. Dr. Wilson was correct in sayinj,', that "General Jack.son,
thou.t,'h not a re;,'ular piofessor of re!i;4ion while actiog President, was, however, the
most religious President we have ever had." — Tun Author.
"For many a year to come, the sword of every rigliteoiis
nation must be whetted to save or to iiubdiio; uor will it be by
patience of others' sufferintr, but by the ofturiug of your own,
that you will ever draw nearer to the time when the great
change shall pass upon the iron of the earth ; when men shall
beat their swords into jdoughshares, and their spears into prun-
ing liooks; neither shall they learn war any more."*
If ]Mr. Huskin is correct, war is to be the trade of man for
ages to come. Alas, alas! that it should be so. But since it is
so, and has been so from the begiiiniug, and we fear will so
continue for ages to come, it is proper for us to consider brielly
the question :
Can the son of wnr^ he a child qf God? Is it pcssilh for a
man of Mood to he a sincere follower of the Prince of Pence?
Various observations and facts are given in this volume as illus-
trations of what kind of an answer should be given to this
question. Historically, we know that neither tiie exclusive
* Ruskin's Lectures, p. 250.
XX INTRODUCTION".
divine right ot kings, nor the doctrine of passive obedience and
non-resistance even to tyrann5', has been able to prevent v.-ars
in past ages. And until human nature shall be vastly changed
from what it is, we do not *ee that wars will cease out of the
earth. And as long as wars exist, so long will there be soldiers.
AVhether war is the natural state of man or not, certain it is,
tliat as it has been, so it is now, and so it will be to the end of
our present economy. Does Christianity then absolutely forbid
all wars? Is it impossible for a Christian man to en^-age iu
war without violating his principles? That most wars are un-
lawful and wholly nnjustifiable, we are ready to admit. But
all wars are not alil:e. Peace and war are noble or otherwise,
according to their kind and occasion. And even as to wicked
and unholy wars, are not tax-payers just as much involved in
their sinfulness as tlie officers and men of the army and navy
that are actually engaged in carrying them on ? And if all
wars are sinful, how is it that God himself ever commanded his
chosen people to go to war ?
Jehovah is never so straitened for means to carry forward his
purposes as to do evil tl'at good may come out of it, Never.
And moreover, if v,-ar is always and essentially a moral wrong,
how are we to look npon the wars of Abraham, Joshua, Gideon,
Moses and David? And what are we to say of the acknow-
ledged piety of Yicars, Hammond, Col. Gardiner, Gen. Burns,
the Lawrences, Nicholsons, Edwardes, and General Havelock,
and many others in. modern times living and dead, who are or-
naments and pillars of the Church of God, and yet at the same
time are distinguished for their service to their country in the
army and navy ?
Nor do we find in the New Testament any censure upon the
centurions whose history is presented in the folTowing pages, for*
their connection with the military profession. There is not a
syllable like this recorded of the centurion of Capernaum, nor
of Cornelius, nor of the centurion in command at the crucifixion,
nor of Julius, who had charge of Paul on his perilous journey
to Pwome. Nor did John the Baptist, nor our Loixl in preaching
INTRODUCTIOlSr. XXI
to soldiers, intimate that their profession was inconsistent with
the ethics of Christianity. And besides this presumptive testi-
mony against the objection, that a military man cannot be a
good Christian, what is the army or the navy but a national
police ? If it is right for a city to have its mayor, sheriff, con-
stables and police, then it is right for a nation to have its army
and navy. They are nothing but its police force to suppress
insurrection, enforce law and preserve order. Laws wiihout
penalties are no laws at aH. Then every man must be his own
judge and take the laws into his own hand, or he must be sub-
ject to a government that will protect him. And for this pur-
pose the government must have its police force. And if a
Christian man may be a magistrate, a sheriff, or a constable or
member of the city police, then he may be a sailor or a soldier,
a commander in the fleet or army. There is nothing wrong in
the one case more than the* other. There is no more, sin in
being a commodore or general than there is in being a justice
of the peace or the head of the government. The Rev. W. E.
Boardman has briefly and very pointedly presented this idea in
some foot-notes to bis "Higlier Christian Life." We would also
refer those who desire to study the arguments on the justifiablcness
of war, as ngainst Dr. Wayland and others of liis school, who con-
demn all wars as useless, immoral and wicked, to the introductory
chapter of Copt. 11. "W. Halleck's " Elements of Military Art and
Soionce," and to the authors therein named. - This work is a valuable
one, combining the results of fine scholarship and of patient and
extensive study. The introductory chapter, though short for the
subject, is so exhaustive as to leave scarcely any thing else to be said.
We think his positions are ably and triumphantly sustained: but wo
need hardly add, we earnestly plead against war. «
In the Xew Testament we read :
"And the soldiers hkewise demanded of him, saying, And
what shall we do ? And he said unto them, Do violence
to no man. neither accuse any falsely, and be content with
your wages. ' — Luke iii. 14. We do not know ^^'ilether these
XXll II^TRODUOTIOj^.
soldiers were Jews or Romans, but the probabilitj is, thej
Avere proselytes in the service of Herod Antipas, or of Philip,
and in either case they were in the Roman service. The
Greek term used here does not signify soldiers merely, but
soldiers (strateumenoi) actually in arms, or under marching
orders for battle. And as we learn from Josephus, that
Herod was at this time engaged in war with Aretas, a king
of Arabia, it is highly probable that Michaelis is right in
saying that the military who came to John were a part of
Herod's army, then marching from Galilee, and passing through
the region where John was preaching. If this be correct, it is
worthy of special notice, that John does not assume to decide
between Herod and the Arabian king, nor say anything as to
the lawfulness or justice of the war, but simply, and in his usual
boldness and directness of style, tells the soldiers how to behave.
In those days, armies were not as well provided for as they are
now. Tliey Avere not under tlie same discipline that oar sol-
diers are as. to private property. The custom was to make the
country occupied by troops support them. And, consequently,
the soldiers were strongly tempted to violence. And if they
could not obtain such provisions and spoils as they wished from
the inhabitants in any other way, they brought charges against
them, falsely accusing them of disloyalty, rebellion, conspiracy,
or some crime, by which tliey could justify themselves for
taking by violence Avhat they wanted. Hence the propriety of
John's Knox-Latimer style of preaching to them. "Do vio-
lence to no man, neither accuse any falsely ; and be content
with your wages." As if he had said. Take nothing by unlaw-
ful means. Do not manufacture charges against the people.
Accuse no one falsely. Be faithful, obedient, enduring. Find
no fau* with your service. Murmur not at your pay. Ob-
serve, then, John does not condemn their profession. He does
not say, it was sinful for them to be soldiers, and that they
must leave military service before they could please Gbd. But
be does tell them that they must not do any wrong thing under
pretext that their calling required or excused it. Men in the
INTRODUCTION. XXlll
army and the navy, as in all other professions, and everywhere,
should be Christians.
The state of the question, then, is this ; Most wars we think
are wicked, unlawful and unjustifiable, either in tliQ sight of
God or man ; but we do not believe that every war is sinful/
Nor do we believe that the Gospel forbids the followers of
Christ to engage in the military profession. "We uot only do
not find any direct prohibition of war in the Bible, but on the
contrary we have in the Old Testament '" the wars of the Lord."
We find God commanding war and conquest. And if all wars
are unjustifiable and sinful, how is it that our Lord and his apos-
tles have not expressly })rohibited the military profession in the
most unequivocal and positive terms ? And, moreover, if every
war is sinful, how is it we find so many pious men in the army?
men as eminent for piety as for courage in the march, patience
in the camp, and etficiency in the storm of battle ? And the
centurions whose history we are here studying are as commend-
able for their faith and extraordinary devotion as for their loy-
alty in the service of the pagan emperor of Rome. Our pur-
pose here, however, is not to encourage war. We believe that
most of the wars of our day are unnecessary and unjustifiable.
And we believe the tendency of the Gospel is to do away with
them from the earth; and that if all men were fully under its
influence there would be no wars. Our purpose in the follow-
ing pages, is mainly to show that it is not impossible for sol-
diers to be pious — that their condition is not in itself so sinful,
that they are to be excused from a religious life, because they
are soldiers or marines.
It is no doubt true that it is much harder for some men to be
religious than others, just as it costs some men more to be
decent than it would cost others to become saints. ISome men
are so constitutionally wicked — have so professionally and
thoroughly devoted themselves to sin, that they are not only
totally depraved, but their faculties are severally and alone,
each by itself in need of an entire conversion for itself. But
what then ? Must we despair ? By no means. Jesus Chkist
liLlV INTEODUCTION.
IS THE Saviour of sixxers, even of the chief of sinners.
And the more desperate the case, the more glory to the medi-
cal man that can heal it. Our great aim, then, in this volume,
is to give an expository history of the Four Centurions, offi-
cers of the Roman army in Judea in apostolic times, who were
to a greater or less degree brought under the power of the Gos-
])el, or at least made acquainted with our Lord's history and
doctrines ; and to illustrate the fact, that eminent piety in a
soldier is consistent with the loftiest courage — that in truth,
the Church of God may and does exist in earthly armies. It is
certainly very desirable that military men, officers ana privates
in the army, should be constantly reminded that there have
been found in all ages in their profession, men whose piety, to
say the least, would bear a comparison with that of any other
profession. It is a necessary encouragement to them to know
that men of their OAvn class, men in every respect by birth and
education and daily circumstances like themselves, have been
truly pious. This should keep, them from despairing. The
cases we have tried to illustrate show, also, that God employs a
great variety of means or instruments by which to bring men
to a k'nowledge of saving truth ; and that in some instances a
high standard of piety has been displayed under great disad-
vantages. Men in the army and navy are accustomed to deci-
sion, promptness in action, and to meet with opposition and to
endure discipline, to display a lofty courage and a devotion to
their country and th,e cause they defend. It is perfectly con-
sistent, therefore, that when it pleases God to reveal himself to
them, they should show the same manful decision and courage
in behalf of the Gospel.
THE CENTURI01!T OF CAPERNAUM.
And wlien Jesus was entered into Capernaum, there came unto bim
a centurion, besecliing liini, and saying, Lord, my servant lieth at
home sick of the palsy, grievously tormented. And Jesus saith unto
him, I will come and heal him. The centurion answered and said,
Lord, I am not worthy that thou shouldest come under my roof: but
speak the word only, alid my servant shall be healed. For I am s.
man under authority, having soldiers under me; and I say to this
man, Go, and he gooth ; and to another. Come, and he cometh ; and
to ray servant. Do this, and he doeth it. When Jesus heard it, he
marvelled, and said to them that followed, Verily I say unto you, I
have not found so great faith, no, not in Israel. And I say unto you,
That many shall come from the east and west, and shall sit down with
Abraham, and Isaac, and Jacob, in the kingdom of heaven : but the
children of the kingdom shall be cast out into outer darkness : there
shall be weeping and gnashing of teeth. And Jesus said unto the
centurion. Go thy way ; and as thou hast believed, so be it done uuto
thee. And his servant was healed in the self-same hour, — Matthew
viii. 5-13. See also Luke vii. 1-10.
1. — The Coming to Jesus.
It seems to us tliat tliis naiTative is one of
tlie most beautiful gems that so profusely adorn
tlie Gospel history. It is the picture of a reli-
26 THE CEXTUPwIOX OF CAPEKNAUJM.
gious soul in a lovely and cliild-like form, re-
vealing an extraordinary faith under great dis-
advantages.
And lohen Jesus loas entered into Caper
Qiaiim. The time of this miracle was shortly
after our Lord came down from the mount
where he had delivered his inimitable sermon,
.and not long after the miracle at the wedding
in Cana of Galilee.
The scene of this miracle was the city of Ca-
pernaum, celebrated in the history of our Lord,
though scarcely known in Old Testament times.
Though born in Bethlehem of parents who be-
longed to Nazareth, our Lord^ made his own
home chiefly at Capernaum. While in subjec-
tion to his parents — from early childhood till
he was thirty years of age — he seems to have
dwelt in Nazareth ; but about the time that he
commenced his public ministrations, or soon
after his baj)tism, he *' came and dAvelt in Ca-
pernaum." This city was therefore the centre
of his operations. To it we iind him generally
returninQc from his vai'ious itinerant missions.
It was situate on the northwestern side of tlie
THE CENTURIO]^- OF CAPERNAUM. 27
lake of Gennesaretli, called also the sea of Ga-
lilee. It was a Jewish city, at this time held
by a Koman garrison in Herod's pay. There
is still some doubt whether tiie precise spot on
which it stood has been identified. Hitter and
others suppose the Tell Hum of our day to
mark its site; but our countryman, Dr. Ilohin-
son, and others, think ICalin Minyeli, about
three miles farther north, is its true site. IIo^v-
ever this may be, it is incontrovertible that our
Lord's prediction concerning this city has been
long since fulfilled. " Thou, Capernaum, which
ait exalted unto heaven, shalt be brought
down to hell ; for if the mighty works which,
have been done in thee,, had been done in So-
dom, it would have remained until this day.
But I say unto you, that it shall be more toler-
able for the land of Sodom in the day of judg-
ment than for thee." Matth. xi. 23, 24.
Although this city was our Lord's home dur-
ing the years of his public ministry, and not-
withstanding He gave its inhabitants many
evidences of his power to work miracles and to
save, still they were remarkable for their infi-
28 THE CEI^TURIOI^ OF CAPERNAUM.
delity, impenitence and general wickedness,
and lience his denunciation of their sins for
rejecting Him and continuing in their rebel-
lion. Their abuse of great privileges aug-
mented their guilt until their condemnation
was greater than that of Sodom.
There came unto Him a centurion. Our
word centurion is 'from the Latin centum^ a
hundred, and means literally a Koman officer
commanding a hundred men, corresj)onding
nearly to our captain. (See Adams' Rom.
Antiq., p. 370.) The title centurion was, how-
ever, used with so much latitude, that it some-
times siscnified one who led a subdivision of a
Roman legion, without fixing precisely its num-
ber. In the following places we find mention
made of persons called centurions. Beside the
passages referred to as texts above, Mattli,
xxvii. 54 ; Acts xi., xx., xxii., xiii., xxiv., xxvii.,
xxviii. The first convei-t to Christianity after
the crucifixion from among the Gentiles whose
name is known to us '^^"as Cornelius, a centu-
rion of the Italian band at Cesarea, of whom
we have more to say in another chapter. At
THE CENTUEIOX OF CAPERNAUM. 29
least four centurions are favoraljly sjDoken of in
the New Testament.
Some tliink the centurion of Matthew now
before us the same who is called a nobleman of
Capernaum in John iv., who came to Jesus, and
begged mercy for his son. But there is no rea-
son to suppose them the same. There are some
striking j^oints of resemblance, it is true, in the
two narratives ; but our Lord was never strait-
ened for motives nor for means of showing his
mercy. In both cases, the person asking help
occupied a high position in society, and the
person at the point of deatli was young, and
the cure was wrought at a distance ; and in
both cases, the faith of the person making the
a2;)plication was remarkable ; and our Lord was
glorified by both miracles. Still there are
points dissimilar — so dissimilar that the cases
must be distinct. The one was a Jewish no-
bleman, looking for the Messiah ; the other was
a Eoman officer, who had but little, if any,
information concernins: the m'eat Hebrew that
was so long and so ardently looked for as the
Messiah. The Jewish nobleman makes appli
80 THE CENTUEIOlSr OF CAPEKJ^AU^I.
cation io Jesus in behalf of a son, ^vlio Avas
nigli unto deatli witli a fever ; tlie lloman oill-
cer applies for aid for a servant (a slave), wlio
was afflicted Avitli paralysis. One miracle was
wrought by our Lord when he was at Cana,
the other when he was in the streets of Caper-
naum. But that which most distinguishes
between the miracles was the faith of the appli-
cants. The Jewish nobleman's faith was feeble.
He besouirht our Lord that he would come and
heal his son, for he was at the point of death.
JoJni iv. 2T. He seems not to have thought
that Jesus could heal his son, unless he visited
him, and, like a medical man, on the spot
should examine the patient, and prescribe ac-
cording to the symptoms. Hence, we hear him
saying, ''Sir, come down ere my child die."
But the centurion said, " Lord, I am not wor-
thy that thou shouldest come under my roof:
but speak the word only, and my servant shall
be healed."
There is some difference of opinion among
inferpreters as to the identit}' of the cases re-
corded by Mattliew and Lulw Cavillers have
THE CENTURION OF CAPERNAUM. 31
attempted to make out a contradiction between
tliem. In regard to wliicli, let it be remem-
bered, we Lave no j^ositjvo proof that l)otli
evan^-elists refer to tlie same case. It is not
impossible but that there were two instances
very much alike. Their circumstances may
have been mainly coincident, and yet not iden-
tical. But on the su23position that we have
two accounts of the same case, we find no diffi-
culty in harmonizing them. They agree as to
the characters, time and place, and substantially
in the details. The only difference is that Iai1^:6
is more particular in his chronology, and is
more*full, and gives us more details of outivard
events than are preserved in Mattlieio. Ijiike
says the centurion sent the elders of the Jews,
who besought Jesus to grant his request, say-
ing that he was worthy, for he lovetli our na-
tion and hath built us a synagogue. But Mat-
tlieio^ in saying that the centurion came unto
Jesus, does not contradict Lalce's statement.
He does not say that he had not sent his
friends the elders of the Jews, nor does Luke
say that he did not follow after them himself
32 THE CENTUEIOK OF CAPERNAUM.
Tlie probable state of tlie case was, that at first
lie sent, and being anxious, lie followed after-
ward himself. And each of tlie evano-elists
records that j)aii: of the transaction which
made the deepest impression on his mind, or
seemed to him the most important. And as
Luke was most familiar with Gentiles, and
seems to have written his memoirs of our Lord
especially for them, he records that this E-onian
officer was so kind to the Jews that their elders
were his friends and interceded in his behalf,
while Jfattheiv^ writing for his own countiy-
men, the Jews, was the most impressed with
the fact that the centurion, a Roman officer,
came himself to our Lord, who was a Jew.
And besides, if this explanation is not sufficient,
then we may adopt the legal maxim, and say —
that which we do through or by another, is
done by us. We may appear in court by our
attorney or lawyer. We may be said to build
a house, though we employ a carpenter to do
it. A farmer may be said to plough and reap,
although he employs laborers to do it for him.
Such language is common, and obtains in all
THE CENTUEION OF CAPERNAUM. 33
tongues. There is then no handle here for the
enemies of the Gospel with which to work up
a discrepancy between the evangelists. There
is no contradiction between them ; but on the
contrary, by a candid and intelligent compari-
son of the two accounts, we obtain a more full
history than we could get from either sepa-
rately, and at the same time have an incidental
or undesigned proof of their truthfulness as
writers. Such minor variations are common in
all written and oral narrations.
The elders sent to convey the centurion's
message interceded for him, saying : " That he
was worthy for whom he should do this, for
he loveth our nation, and hath built us a syna-
gogue." — Liike vii. 3-5.
A synagogue was a chapel or place of wor-
ship, where- the Jews held their meetings for
reading and expounding the holy Scriptures,
but perhaps not common among them till after
the captivity in Babylon. And as the centu-
rion commanded the Roman garrison at Caper-
naum, he probably thought it would have a
good effect upon the restless, turbulent Jews,
34 THE CE:N^TURIOj!T of CAPERNAUM.
wlio were so "bitter in tlieir j)rejiidices against
tlie Eomans, if lie showed them kindness. Sol-
diers and sailors are proverbially liberal willi
tlieir means, and prompt to support public
institutions. It was, however, a remarkable
instance of good feeling, even if there was a
measure of political expediency in it, for a Ro-
man centurion out of his small salary to build
a Hebrew synagogue.
We must not think, however, that we can
purchase the grace of God by our charities.
The centurion did not think of claimino; the
divine interposition because he had built a
synagogue for the Jews. He did not speak of
this at all. Nor is there any merit in religious
duties to atone for our sins, or to give us a
claim upon divine mercy on account of them.
We should no doubt build houses of worship,
and supj)ort the institutions of the Gospel, and
we should read the Word of God, and hear his
Gospel preached ; but the means of grace are
not to be substituted for Christ. The divine
IDromise is that we shall find a blessing, if we
seek, but not hecause we seek. The use of the
THE CEI^TUEION OF CAPERIS^AUM. 35
means of grace is not tlie procuring cause of
salvation, but tlie channel or way in whicli we
are to find it. They bring Christ before us.
It was when Lydia was in the synagogue on
the Sabbath day that she heard Paul ]3reach,
and the Lord opened her heart to understand
what she heard. It was when the Ethiopian
was reading Isaiah, as he was returning from
the worshipping of the Lord at Jerusalem, that
the Sj)irit sent Philij) to him to preach unto
him Jesus. They were all found in the dili-
gent, prayerful use of the means.
" Beseeching him and saying. Lord, my ser-
vant lietli at home, sick of the palsy, grievously
tormented." Ify servant — literally " my boy "
— a common and familiar term as gargon in
French, or as we use the word hoy for a favor-
ite servant Avithout res^ard to his ao^e. Luke
calls him a slave, and so interpreters generally
understand the word doulo,s. Calvin suggests
that he was a slave of rare fidelity and endow-
ments, and hence the master's greater solicitude
to save his life.
Lietli cti home — literally is prostrate in the
36 THE CENTURION OF CAPEENAUM.
liouse — side of the j^c^.-s*?/. It would seem tliat
paralysis is not wholly a modern disease, as
neuralgia or dyspej)sia are said to be. Critical-
ly speaking, tliere may be some difference be-
tween j)alsy and paralysis, tliougli tlie first
term seems to be only a contraction of the lat-
ter ; but in the New Testament they seem to be
spoken of as quite the same thing, and as com-
ing under our term apoplexy. The original
here signifies a relaxation of the nerves of one
side. The palsy j)revailed in our Lord's day,
and does still in the East. But there is scarce-
ly any description in the New Testament of
the diseases that prevailed in Judea in his day.
Grievously tormented — tenibly, fearfully dis-
tressed — is in great agony and at the point of
death, as in Lulce. Now it is entirely a mis-
take, as some critics say, that in such a case of
palsy there was no consciousness, no agony, no
suffering. It may .be true that torment or
agony does not always accompany the palsy.
But there is a form of this disease that is at-
tended by violent cramps and strong j)ains, and
is exceedingly dangerous. Trench says the dis-
THE CENTUKIO]^- OF CAPERNAUM. 37
ease in tliis case was paralysis, witli contraction
of the limbs and joints, and was, tliei'efore, a
case of extreme suffering as well as of great
danger. The Greek term for grievousltj tor-
oncnted is from the name of a Lydian stone,
upon which metals were proved, and hence it
came to be used for applying an engine of tor-
ture in the examinatior of criminals, and meta-
phorically to afflict, torment. And hence here
it is applied to a jparalytic w^ho is suffering vio-
lent pains.
II
THE CEJ^TURION" OF CAPERT>rAUM C0:N^TII^UED
2. — The Peculiar Excellence of Ms Faith,
And Jesus saitli unto hirn^ I xoill come and
heal him — tliat is, I will grant your request.
I will save your servant. I am ready even to
go to your house. Our Lord's reply then w^as
prompt and gracious, marked with a confidence
and dignity that showed that he was conscious
of inherent power to work such a miracle as
would save this servant. And now in the cen-
turion's reply and our Lord's commendation of
him we have an instance of extraordinary ftiith
— of strono; and discrimimitino; faith — and of a
miracle wrought without personal contact or
immediate presence. Happily for us, this case
will enahle us to consider the nature of faith,
which is an ess.ential thing both in society and
in religion. For such is our constitution that
THE CEISTTUEIOIT OF CAPEEXAUM. 39
we caiiuot live without fixitli. We must Lave
faitli in ourselves and in one another, and in
God and in his Word and works. It is by
faith we know the history of the creation, and
receive all our knowledge of past ages. We
live by faith from day to day. We go to sleep
at night confident of the coming mornino-,
v/hether Ave live to see it or not. We have
Mth in the ordinances of heaven, and trust in
the regularity of the laws which God has im-
posed upon nature. They are all his servants.
We trust in our senses^ though they have
often deceived us. We have faith in ouvfelloiv
men, though they have often cruelly deceived
us. A battle is fought and a kingdom is risked
through faith in the intelligence of a spy. The
merchant sends his vessel to the other side of
the globe in charge of his captain, or ships a
vast amount of goods to his correspondents, or
buys thousands of dollars' worth of exchange, all
on faith. The general must trust his officers and
men, and they must have faith in him and in
one another. And though some soldiers have
turned traitors, and some clerks and consio-nees
40 THE CENTUKIOIT OF CAPERNAUIM.
liave beeu heartless villains, still, so essential
is the principle of faitli in society, that we
must act on it. We cannot do without it.
Without faith the affairs of society must stand
still, and society itself is nothing but a moun-
tain of sand. Faith, then, is not a mere ab-
straction, nor the invention of cunning priests
by which to put a yoke upon the people's
necks to hold them down while they help
themselves to their purses. Faith is not some-
thing merely bound uj) in the Confession and
Thirty-nine Articles. Nor is it a new faculty
of the mind made to priestly order by the
Council of Nice, or by the Synod of Dort, or
by the Westminster Assembly, or by the Brit-
ish Parliament. In general, faith is not a super-
natural thing. It is a simple, familiar princi-
ple of every-day life. Intellectually and in a
relisrious sense it is the same thino-. It is be-
lief, trust, confidence. But religiously, it is
trust in God, belief in all God has said to us,
because He says it, and confidence in his mercj
throudi his well-beloved Son Jesus Christ.
Such a faith is the gift of God. It is produced
THE CENTUEIO^ OF CAPERl^AUM. 41
by liis Spirit. It is " a saving grace wherel)y
we receive and rest upon Jesus Christ alone
for salvation, as lie is offered to us in tlie Gos-
pel." We may tlien see why it is that the
Scfriptures speak of faith as being so important,
and tell us that without faith we cannot please
God, nor be saved. And it is certainly re-
markable that the two most extraordinary
instances of faith recorded in the New Testa-
ment should have been found among the
heathen, and not in the Hebrew Church — this
centurion and the Syro-Phoenician woman in
Mattliew XV. And of her case, our Lord did.
not speak of her toil and travel, nor of her
expense and perseverance, submission, patience,
humility and maternal solicitude in coming to
Ilim, but specifies her faith as most worthy of
notice ; so here it is not the benevolence, nor
charities, nor rank, nor soldierly demeanor, nor
humility and perseverance of the centurion that
our Lord commends as most worthy of admira-
tion, l)ut his faith. "Verily I say unto you,
I have not found so gi'eat faith, no, not in
Israel."
42 THE CEXTUEIOI^ OF CAPEKIS-AUM.
In the first jAace^ tlieu, is tliere any thing in
the centurion's case that justifies our LorcFs
commendation ? Even liemarvelled at it. That
is, was filled with wonder, admiration, aston-
ishment, speaking after our manner, that 'so
discriminating and strong a faith in him should
be professed by a Roman officer. And the
Holy Spirit has no doubt preserved this record
of our Lord's admiration, to teach us that this
man's faith is to be imitated as well as won-
dered at. It was wonderful that a man under
such natural disadvantages as had encompassed
this pagan and soldier in his education and
^youth, and profession in manhood, should re-
cognize what the Jewish rulers failed to see,
and should j)rofess a greater faith than any of
their race — a race heroic by faith — had ever
before displayed.
First. It was to be marvelled at that such
faith was found outside of the Hebrew Church.
The term faith used in the text does not of
itself necessarily imply saving views of Christ
as a Kedeemer ; but from its connection, we
think it proper so to consider it. Primarily it
THE CEi, not in Israel — that is, not
among the chosen people. Not one of the dis-
ciples or apostles, even, had as yet made such
a profession of faith in him. They had the
prophets and Moses, whose writings clearly
pointed out the work and character of the
Messiah, yet they had not professed such frdth
in him. Not in Israel is emphatic. Israel
was the memorial name of Jacob for his havinsr
prevailed with God so as to become a prince,
and from liim all Jews ])refer to be called
Israelites, just as the j^eople of Rome assumed
to be called Romans in honor of Homuhis.
The meaning then is : I have not found such
an instance of faith amono; the Jews, who are
4-i TIEE CENTUEION OF CAPEET^AUM.
clistingulslied for tlieir princes, who liave pre-
vailed witli God on account of tlieir laitli.
They have had men of heroic faith, but not
such an instance as this.
The distin2:uishino; excellence of the centu-
rion's faith, then, did not consist in his having
an exalted idea of God, and believing that he
was the Creator and governor of all things.
David had as 2:reat faith in the works of crea-
tion and Providence as he had, and no doubt
knew a OTeat deal more than he did. And
Cleero and many of the heathen had some
grand ideas of the Divine power. He could
say : " Nihil est quod Deus eflicere non posset,
et quidem sine labore ullo," etc. (JDe Kat. D.^
lib. 3.)
Nor did the peculiar excellence of the centu-
rion's faith lie in his belief in miracles. All
Jews, and even all the heathen, believed in
miracles. It was a part of the common faith
of the whole world, and is so still, with excep-
tions as rare as idiots. The peculiarit}^, the dls-
tin2:uisliino: excellence, then, of this man's faith
consisted in this — that he, being a Gentile and
THE CEIiTTUKION OF CAPEENAUM. 45
a Koman officer, accustomed to see men liavinoc
influence and autliority regarded with great
ceremony, should believe that Jesus, who was
outwardly a mere man — a Hebrew — in humble
circumstances, and without any of the pomp or
signs of power that he was accustomed to re-
cognize, wielded the heavenly powers, and had
as complete ' a control over them, and over all
diseases and spirits as he had over his servants
and soldiers.
Second. It was worthy of sjDecial attention
that such faith was found in a soldier. Our Lord
was at this time surrounded by the Scribes, and
probably in the house of a Pharisee, but it was
in the Roman soldier that he found the greatest
faith. As the profession of arms is not in it-
self sinful — is not a sin "per se — so neither is the
term soldier synonymous with cruelty or blood-
thirstiness, nor with drinking, debauchery and
lawlessness. If there are butchers among sol-
diers like Nana Saldh^ there are also Haveloclcs
who are as distinguished for refinement and
kindness of feeling as for lofty courage. We
regard war as a terrible thing, but it is some-
46 THE CEN^TUEIOIf OF CAPEE]S"AUM.
times tlie less of two evils. "War is better than
national clisorrace, or sucli loss of national honor
and position as should destroy our self-respect
and happiness. Gladly would we have our
cannon turned into church bells, and our shot
and balls into railroads, and our men of vrar
into merchant shi23S, if it were exj)edient. But
it is not, nor will it be, until men 'shall learn
war no more. Such is the depravity of man-
kind that one sword is necessary to keep an-
other in its scabbard. It is not necessary here,
however, to enter upon the question about the
lawfulness of war in Christian states. The
only point here insisted on is, that because a
man is a soldier, he is not of necessity the
greatest of sinners. A man is under no neces-
sity to serve Satan, because he serves the gov-
ernment as a soldier. The army is not a favor-
able school for piety. The military profession
presents occasions and temptations to idleness
and manifold w]-ong-doing. It is an excited,
spasmodic, irregular kind of life. The soldier
and the sailor are often without Sabbaths and
sanctuaries, and under peculiar temptations to
THE CEA^TURIOIS" OF CAPERNAUM. 47
fo^'get God, yet it lias pleased God tliat liis
grace should have many heroes even in armies
and camj)s and naval ships. If the military
profession was a sin ])er se^ then, instead of
having chaplains to preach the Gospel and
administer the sacraments of the Chnrcli in onr
army and navy, they should urge the men to
desertion. But vv^hen the soldiers crowded to
hear John the Baptist preach, as well as the
Scribes and Pharisees, did he tell them to
desert, and join a Peace society? No; but he
did tell them to do no violence and to be con-
tent with their wages, and not to accuse any
man falsely. Soldiers are found also listening
to the vfords of truth as they fell from the lips
of the Great Teacher himself. Bat he did not
tell them to leave their profession because it
was a sin. In the New Testament vv^e have
four different centurions brought under the
power of the Gospel. The one before us owed
allegiance to a heathen emperor, yet he pos-
sessed greater faith than any in Israel. And
^vhat shall we say of Abraham, Moses, Joshua
and David — men of preeminent faith, and yet
48 THE CENTUEIOlSr OF CAPEEIS-AUM.
heroes in battle ? And wliat shall we say of
Captain Page, Captain Gordon, Colonel Gar-
diner, General Burns and General Sh' Henry
Havelock; and many others in our times ?
III.
CENTURIOIir OF CAPERlSrAUM CONTINUED.
3. — Evidences of the Centmnon^s Faith,
111 tlie next ])lace^ tlien, let us look at the
proofs or evidences of the centurion^ s faith.
And here observe, First. His tender care for
liis servant. But could not a Koman officer be
kind to liis servants and faitliful to liis sol-
diers, without having any knowledge of the
true religion? Do not the heathen practise
many virtues ? We answer, certainly they do.
There are some actions recorded of heathens
that are worthy of imitation. But admitting
that there are some few things lovely and
excellent among Pagan nations, we do not by
any means admit that their ethics are to be
compared with those of Christianity, or that
they are not in need of the Gospel. By no
means. The picture drawn of them by the
3 49
50 THE CENTUEION OF CAPEENAUM.
apostle in his epistles is still true. Nor do we
allow tliat tlie admission of any good thing to
heathendom is antagonistic to the Gospel. The
morals of lieathendom, even if they were a hiin
dred times better than they are, do not contra-
dict nor supersede Christianity. The teachings
of tradition, the light of nature, and of con-
science and God's Spirit are the teachers of all
men, and are quite sufficient to account for the
glimpses or guesses at truth that we find
among the heathen. Considering the ph3^sical
and moral unity of all human races, it would
be strange if there had not been found in
heathendom an unconscious proj^hesying that
proves the necessity of a Saviour, just as their
sacrifices prove a conscious need for some
atonement for sin. Indeed it would be strange
if there were not some fragmentary truths in
all nations and in all ages, resembling one an-
other, and altogether bearing testimony to
God's own original copy and to the complete
edition of his o^vn revealed truth.
Second. The comijleteness of this Bom an sol-
dler''s character^ as seen in the care of his ser-
. THE CENTUKIOlSr OF CAPEEISTAUM. 51
vant as well as in his public spirit, deserves
special notice. His attention to the religions
wants of the peo23le around him, nurtured his
humane feelings for his own household. His
charity did not all go abroad. He did not
make his generosity toward the Jews an excuse
for neglecting home duties. His public regard
foi the Hebrews was not made a veil to cover
up selfishness. And as a historic fact, it is to
be observed, that true religion is always found
developing what is lovely and of good report,
noble, kind and reasonable. Tliis centurion's
anxiety for the recovery of his slave is, how-
ever, the more remarkable when we consider
that he was a Koman, and the age in which he
lived. His conduct is a remarkable contrast
with that of the eloquent Cicero, who thought
it necessary to excuse himself for having had
some feelino' at the death of one of his house-
o
hold. Ordinarily in that age and among the
Romans, slaves were denied the sympathy that
belonged to other human beings.
In whatever way we may account for the
morality and tenderness of this Roman officei
52 THE CENTURION OF CAPERNAUM. •
toward his servant, we iind them in connection
with, colored by, and developed in an extraor-
dinary faith. His benevolence and charity, if
not called into being by his religious faith,
were certainly ennobled and made more deli-
cate by it. It is indeed true that morality is
not piety, but there is no consistent or true
piety without good morals. It is true, that high
social affections, amiable instincts, commercial
virtues — promptness in business, cajDacity for
business, and integrity on 'Change, are not to
be substituted for penitence and faith in Christ,
yet they are in every way commendable. But
the instinct of kindness toward a servant or
dependent may in itself be no more in a reli-
gious way than instinct tenderness toward a
horse or dog. And does not this instinct ten-
derness for animals exist among the heathen
who have never heard of the name of Jesus ?
May not a deist^ who does not believe in the
Bible, bind a poultice to his wounded hound,
or an atUeist^ who denies immortality, and says
there is no God, weep over the groans of his
dying steed ? May it not l)e, then, that a man
THE CE]STUEION OF CAPEENAUIVI. 53
is sober, intelligent, and industrious — that lie
has been a dutiful son, and is a faithful hus-
band, an indulgent father, a kind neighbor, a
good citizen, an upright and honest man, and
that still he is not a Christian? If he is all
this, let us thank God for it ; but let us
remember that one thing he lacks yet, and
that one thing is love to God — a supreme
regard for his will — an habitual reference of
all to his law as the standard of rig-ht and
wi'ong- — an habitual trust in God as a sinner
reconciled to Him throug-h Jesus Christ, l^ow
is it not fairly a matter within your own expe-
rience or observation, that a man may have
amiable instincts and social and business vir-
tues, and yet not have the fear of God before
his eyes ? There is want of spirituality spread
over all he is and does. There is no spirit of
prayer, of love to God, nor panting after holi-
ness, nor habitual striving to please God. Is
it not true that a lady may be found weeping
at the theatre over a tragedy, who has never
wept over her guilt as a sinner, for rejecting
Christ ; or in ecstasy at an opera, who has
54 THE CENTUEION OF CAPERNAUM.
never rejoiced in tlie love of God slied -abroad
in lier lieart by tlie Holy Gliost ? A taste for
j)oetry and tlie fine arts does not always imply
a love of holiness, Nor does a reformation of
manners always imply regeneration, tliongb
regeneration is seen only by a reformation of
life. Every conversion to God yields tlie fruits
of true obedience to his laws. Salvation by
grace does not lead to licentiousness, nor does
justification by faith excuse us from good
works, but the rather impels us to them, so
that those who believe in justification by faith,
and in salvation by sovereign grace, are of all
men the hardest and most persevering workers.
They w^ork diligently because God works in
them, and they believe God is helping them.
It is not true, then, that Christianity diminishes
in any measure a man's tenderness for his fellow
men; nor does it make a man any the less
trustworthy as a mechanic, merchant or soldier.
On one occasion the general in command of the
English army in India was told tiiat the insur-
gents were about making an attack on one of
his positions, and he ordered out a certain regi-
THE CENTUKION OF CAPERNAUM. 55
ment to oppose tliem ; but Lis aid replied, tliat
regiment could not go, for "tliey were all
drunk." " Then," said tlie commander, '' call
out Ilavelock's saints; they are never drunk^
and Havelock is always ready." Accordingly
the bude sounded — the ranks of the " saints "
closed sternly up, and with him at their head,
who had so often led them in prayer, the troops
charged on the enemy and scattered them in
flight.* This true history is its own interpre-
ter. For the soldiers wha were so sober and so
much given to singing psalms, reading the
Biljle, and j^rayer, that they were called Have-
loch^ s saints^ because he had so taught them,
were the very men of all others to meet the
enemy. And never did they fail to perform
their duty faithfully to their general, their
country and their God. The history of war
from the beginning till now, does not present a
record of greater courage or of more lofty hero-
ism in battle, than we find in Havelock's In-
dian campaigns with his Highlanders and the
13th Infantry.
* Ileadlcy's Life of Havelock, p. 48.
56 THE CEN^TUEION OF CAPEKCN^AUM.
It is not then true, that tlie Gospel builds up
the Church on the ruins of civilization. Christ-,
ianity wages no war against the fine arts, nor
does it preach any crusade against the elegant
accomplishments or proprieties of society. Go-
ing to church is not to make people vinegar-
faced ; nor is true enlightened piety a lowering
gloom, nor a moping melancholy. A man does
not cease to be a gentleman by ])ecoming a
Christian. On the contrary, he is only half,
and the least half of a gentleman before, for
until he is a Christian, even if he is all that a
gentleman should be toward his fellow men,
he has not done his duty to his God, and is
therefore sadly Avanting in that completeness —
that hio-h finish of character that constitutes
the highest style of a gentleman — a tliorongldy
Iwnest incm both toward his fellow men and
God. And shall we not imitate this Roman
officer in his tenderness toward his servant \
Among the great evils of our times are the in-
subordination of domestics, the precocity of
children, and the selfishness of masters and the
heads of establishments. Flunkies affect to be
THE CENTURIOI^ OF CAPERNAUM. 57
lords, and " the queens of society " are in tlie
kitclien. So feelingly and so universally is the
remark made, that " servants are the greatest
plagues of life," that we are almost ready to
wish our times were thrown back to the feudal
ages, when, if there was a distinction in rank
there was also some care for subordinates, and
some household pride and aifection. But now
household relations are transient, spasmodic,
uncertain — a mere convenience or necessity for
dollars and cents. The social and religious
improvement of the one part, and the promot-
ing of the welfare of the other part, are re-
spectively t)verlooked. Nor is it easy to see
where the remedy lies. We can, however, look
back to former years, and sigh that in this par-
ticular the past is better than the present. The
evils of society, as it now exists among us, are
very serious, both as it regards the well-being
of its members in this world, and the spiritual
necessities of both masters and servants, heads
of establishments and the young under their
care. It is perfectly obvious that we are tend-
ing in our day to anarchy and lawlessness, and
3*
58 THE CENTUEION OF CAPERNAUM.
to a system of pauperism, wliicli only tlie
strongest governments of Europe are able to
bear. And the root of this evil is the neglect
of home education, the want of family govern-
ment, instruction and religion.
Third. Another evidence of this centurion's
faith is seen in his remarkable humility. His
address to our Lord, saying, I am not ^vortliy
that thou shouldest come under m/y roof^ is the
more remarkable when we consider the relative
position of the parties. Jesus was a Jew — be-
longed to a people despised by the Komans.
There was no earthly pomp or greatness about
him. But here we see an officer of*the Roman
army commanding in a conquered province,
whose master was the conqueror of the world —
rich, influential and powerful — so struck with
the dignity and moral excellence of Jesus, that,
wholly regardless of the disparity of their rank,
he openly professed himself unworthy to re-
ceive a personal visit from him. Indeed, so
remarkable was his humility, that if our Lord
had not commended his Mth, we should have
been at a loss which to admire the most. In-
THE CEISTURIOaS- OF CAPERNAUM. 59
deed, tliey Avere inseparable, and are so still.
Tlie root of his humility was his faith. The
excellence of condescension is that it proceeds
from true greatness. His humility is seen in
his declaration of unworthiness, as well in
sending the Jewish elders as in his declara-
tion about our Lord's coming to his house.
^' Wherefore neither thought I myself worthy
to come unto thee." " Lord, trouble not thy-
self: for I am not worthy that thou shouldest
enter under my roof." Lithe vii. 6, 7. How
vastly different this from the style of the
Pharisees. The Gentile soldier was a better
Christian than the Hebrew elders. So great
was his humility that he did not consider him-
self good enough, nor of sufficient value to
have the honor of our Lord's personal presence
at his quarters.
But it deserves to be remembered that such
humility as this is found only in connection
with true faith. Without reverence there is
no i)iety. The Eoman soldier was not given
to stereot^q^ed and vain phrases. . He was not
quick to make vain professions. But in a few
60 THE CENTUEION OF CAPERNAUM.
words declared wliat he. felt. "S^Deak tlio
word only, and .my servant shall be healed."
Short, exj^licit, and full of meaning, just such
words as such a military man would be likely
to use. He knew nothing about the lore of
the schools. He had no catechetical defini-
tion of faith on hand. He had never read a
theological treatise, hence he made his profes-
sion of faith in the language that his profession
suo^srested. And as faith is the same thincc,
whether found in a heathen, a Jew or a Christ-
ian, whether found in the heart of a soldier, a
sailor, a merchant, or of a philosopher, so there
is no mistake as to his meaning. The forms
and modes of expressing our faith may be
greatly diversified ; but faith itself is the same
thing. Hence he, referring to his own expe-
rience and to his own of&cial power, said : "I
say to one, Go, and he goeth ; and to another.
Come, and he cometh ; and to my servant. Do
this, and he doeth it ;" so says he, I believe you
have the will and the power to heal my servant.
" Speak the world only, and my servant shall
be healed." This is a most lively, laconic pic-
THE CE:XTURI0]S^ of CAPERNAUM. 61
ture of Roman autliority, brevity of command
and promptitude of obedience.
Now as faitli is trust in God, so it is alto-
gether a different tiling from the liauglity and
ignorant spirit of self conceit, whicli is some-
times called independence or manliness. Now,
if by being independent, a young man means
tliat he will earn his own living by honest toil
and owe no man anything — that he will rise
in the world by his own exertions and not owe
it to the patronage of others — that he will be
honored by his own labors rather than hj
those of his father and mother, then we bid
him God speed. This may all be quite right.
But if by independence, he means that he will
be bound by no ties to other human beings —
that he will owe no allegiance to any^will but
his own, and live within and by himself — then
we say, lie is quite at fault. He is trying to
do what is wholly impracticable. He will
never be able to ])[ij his God, his parents and
his country what he owes them. Nor can he
live alone. Without a friend the world is a
desert. Without something: to love and con-
62 THE CEN^TUEIOIf OF CAPEEISTAUM.
fide in, man is a miserable creature. This mor-
bid, affected love of indej)endence tliat throws
off the obligations of society — that frees a man
from the moral 23rinciples taught him by his
parents because they are old-fashioned, and
affects to make a man his own lord and master,
is revolutionary in politics, atlieistic in religion,
and a monstrous deformity. And it j)roves
jealousy and littleness on the part of him that
indulges it, rather than true manliness of char-
acter.
Do not eiT, however, as to the centm^ion's
IminiUfy. He was not blindly pinning his faith
to anybody's sleeves, nor was he imj)aling his
heart for daws to peck at. lie was not fawn-
ing cyn the Emperor of Kome, wov fiatt-e ring the
commanding general of the Eoman legions, nor
teUlng lies, nor offering bribes to the Governor
of Cesarea, nor electioneering for a nomination
to high places and emoluments. His ^homage
was voluntary, and proceeded from his own
conviction. He came to Jesus of Nazareth to
save his dvinir servant. And accordino^ to the
divine promise, having humbled himself, he
THE CENTUPwIO]^ OF CAPERjS^AUM. 6B
was exalted. He did not think himself worthy
that Jesus should enter his house, but our
Lord entered his heart. His humility was be-
fore honor. It was just the reverse with the
Pharisee — he considered Jesus unworthy to be
in his house, or that he was doing him a great
honor to invite him to his house, and our Lord
did not enter into his heart.
Foiirtli, It is in evidence as a proof of the
centurion's extraordinary faith, that he did not
require any assistance from the senses. His
confidence was implicit, perfect in the presence
and power of a will, which was itself not visi-
ble. Is it not remarkable that he did not de-
sire Jesus to go with him — that he did not
consider his hodily presence necessary for Vv^ork-
ing the miracle ? He did not consider any per-
sonal contact necessary. He looked for the
desired result not by any ordinary treatment,
much less by any trickery. His faith was in
the 2:>ower of the Supreme Being, whose agent
he believed Jesus to be, if he was not the very
God of God himself, manifest in a human form.
It is well known that even the heathen had
64 THE CENTURIOIT OF CAPERNAUM.
some idea of tlie God of tlie Jews, and of angels
and spirits, and had some notion of God's
assuming liuman forms, and coming among
men. Homer is full of this. The centurion in
command at the crucifixion had some confused
idea of Divinity on earth,* or that the Son of
God could suffer as a man on the cross. I am
satisfied that the ordinary method of ex23lain-
ing the faith of this centurion and of Cornelius
the centurion of Cesarea, by considering them
proselytes to Judaism, is not correct. It is not
affirmed in either case, nor fairly implied. In-
deed the very reverse seems to be implied in
the terms used to express their piety, and by
the contrast with Israel, in the history now
under consideration. It is, however, true, that
though brought up in the creed of Paganism,
still he had of late years, by his residence in a
Jewish town, sufficient opportunities to become
familiar with Hebrew opinions and somewhat
acquainted with the fame of Jesus. Tlie mira_
cles and history of the former ages of the Jew-
ish nation were no doubt substantially known
to him and believed in l)y Inm. Nor would
THE CE]STUEION OF CAPEEXAOI. 65
this imply at all tliat lie was a proselyte of the
gate ; but only that he was no longer a gross
idolater, and had respect for the Hebrew faith
and people. It is not easy to define how much,
and just what kind of faith the centurioii had
before he came to Jesus ; but we are sure, from
the result, that he did right in applying to
Jesus, and that he had faith enough to save his
servant, and we hope faith enough to save his
soul.
FiTtli. The centurion's case is also the more re-
markable, on account of the national prejudices
that existed toward the Jews in the minds of
all other nations, and which were returned
with compound interest by j:he Jews toward
all other people. The prejudices of race and
religion were exceedingly strong between the
Romans and the Jews, and at this time, their
political subjection made the Jews more bitter
than usual. The proud Roman usually felt
contempt for the conquered Jew. But this
centurion betrays no such feeling ; nor does he
•assume any patronizing air on account of his
military command, nor for what he has done
66 THE CENTUEION OF CAPEENAUM.
for tlie Jews, nor does lie resent tlie peculiar
claims of the Hebrew religion. Taking the
wliole history into review, we cannot but hope
that this centuron was truly converted to God.
He could not have been iscnorant of the main
doctrines of the Hebrew religion. He must
have known that they believed in one only
living and true God, and that they claimed
peculiar privileges as the people of God de-
scended from Abraham; and as we find him
here acknowledging himself unworthy of the
personal regards of a Jew, and yet possessed
of an unwaverino; faith that he could exercise
as unquestioned power over diseases, as he
himself could over his soldiers ;. and the more
so, because this sense of unworthiness and tliis
deep humility imply a sense of sin that could
be produced only by the Holy Spirit. When,
therefore, we put together his consciousness of
sin — his feeling of unworthiness, and his high
opinion of Jesus, and remember that his educa-
tion as a Eoman officer had been completed by
gaining considerable knowledge of the world,
aud especially some knowledge of the Hebrews
THE CENTUEIOlSr OF CAPEENAUM. 67
and of tlie religion of tlie God of Abraham,
Isaac and Jacob — we conclude that tlie sick-
ness of a favorite servant was overruled by a
gracious sovereignty, so as to be made the occa-
sion of his comino* into direct contact with the
Son of God, and of bringing out this confession
of faith in Him.
Sixth, The form of his profession of faith
proves its strength. "For I am," says he, "a
man under authority, having soldiers under
me : and I say to this man, Go, and he goeth ;
and to another. Come, and he cometh ; and to
my servant. Do this, and he doetli it." There-
fore, says he, " speak the word only, and my
servant shall be healed." This was emphatic-
ally a military profession. It was logical, sim-
ple, brief and straight out. His argument was
a fortiori — from the weak to the stronger — from
the less to the greater. He institutes a com-
parison between his military authority over
his soldiers and servants and the j)ower of
Jesus over all things, or at least over spirits
and diseases ; and he says, I believe that you
have all the powers of the invisible world under
68 THE CENTUEIOIS" OF CAPErwNAUM.
your command as fully as I have command
over my soldiers. And even more than this
seems implied. It is as if he had said, I, who
am but a subordinate officer, issue my orders
and they are promptly obeyed, although I am
myself under the authority of my superiors,
whom I implicitly obey ; then much more have
you the power to make diseases go or come at
your simple word. I am an humble officer,
and have command over only a few soldiers
and servants, but thou art in command of the
armies of heaven, and all things are obedient
to thee. His belief that Jesus could heal at a
distance implies his idea that our Lord pos-
sessed omniscience and omnipresence.
IV.
THE CEXTURIOX OF CAPERNAUM CONTINUED.
4. — This Roman officer still p^eacliing ilie
Gosjpel,
First. Here is an incidental illustration of
the perfect liumanity of our Lord. "When
Jesus heard it, he marvelled" — woiuhred^ or
more literally, was astonished, spoken in refe-
rence to his humanity. Our Lord's estate of
humiliation was as real as his estate of exalta-
tion. His body and soul were as truly human,
as his Divinity was truly that of the Godhead.
His human nature was perfect, and in it he
was capable of grief, anger, wonder, or joy.
Tlie only difficulty here is " the mystery of god-
liness : God manifest in the flesh." The mean-
ing of our Lord's marvelling, then, is not that
he did not know the state of the centurion's
mind before he sj)oke. He was as well ac-
70 THE CENTUEIOI^ OF CAPEENATj:^!.
quaint eel witli tlie nature of his faitli, and tlie
grounds upon wLicli it rested, before tlie cen-
turion had professed and explained it as he was
afterward. The term used here also embraces
the idea of admiration — such as is felt for the
greatness and beauty of a thing. Our Lord
then designed to express his admiration for the
centurion's faith as extraordinary in this — that
though nurtured in heathenism, yet his faith
was superior to any he had met Avith among
the children of Abraham. And this admira-
tion the evangelist has expressed in natural
lano^uaofe.
Second. "We should learn from this history
not to indulge in general and indiscriminate
reflections upon whole communities and profes-
sions. AVe must not condemn men as classes.
In the soldier's or sailor's life, in camps and
fleets, there are many drawbacks to a Christian
life ; but where sin reigns, grace has abounded,
and even reigned more gloriously. The profes-
sion of arms is not without its army of saints,
confessors and martyrs, who have waged suc-
cessful war with other than carnal weapons.
THE CENTURION OF CAPEKNAUM. 71
And if some lawyers liave given occasion for
calling their offices " dens of thieves," it does
not follow that none of them are honest. If
some merchants have sworn to false invoices,
and sold goods inferior to their samj^les, it does
not follow that they are all guilty of fraud.
And if some officers of the army and navy do
so far forget themselves as to swear as if they
were with the army in Flanders, it does not
j)rove that all soldiers must take the name
of God in vain, nor that it is necessary to
swear profanely in order to maintain authority
over sailors and soldiers. Ilavelock did not
swear at his men. But he did often pray and
sing psalms with them, read the Bible to them,
and teach them about Jesus Christ.
A most strikino; instance of this is recorded
by the Be v. Mr. Brock, in his Life of Havelock,
in his first campaign. The English army had
just taken Rangoon, in which there is ^'a fa-
mous heathen temple devoted to the service of
Boodh, which is known as the magnificent Shi-
vey Dagoon Pagoda. It is deemed the glory
of the city. Of a chamber of this building,
72 THE CENTUEION OF CAPEEKATBI
Havelock obtained possession for liis own piu--
poses.- All around tlie chamber were smaller
images of Boodli, in the usual ]3osition, sitting
witli tlieir legs gathered up and crossed, and
the hands resting on the lap in symbol and
expression of repose. No great changes were
necessary to prepare the place for Christian
service. It needed no ceremonial exorcising to
make it fit either for psalmody or prayer.
Abominable idolatries had been witnessed
there beyond all doubt, but no sacerdotal purifi-
cations were requisite ere adoration of the true
God could be offered and service well-pleasing
to Him, throuo;h Jesus Christ. Havelock re-
membered well that ' neither in this mountain
nor yet at Jerusalem ' were men to worship the
Father now. To the true worshippers any place
might become a place for worship. Even the
pagoda of Shivey Dagoon might be none other
than the house of God and the gate of heaven.
"Accordingly, it was announced that that
would be the place of meeting. An oflicer
relates that as he was wandering round about
the pagoda on one occasion, he heard the
THE CENTURION OF CAPERNAUM. ^3
sound, strange enougli as lie thought, of sing-
ing. He listened, and found that it was cer-
tainly psalm singing. He determined to fol-
low the sound to its source, and started for the
purpose. At length he reached the chamber,
and what should meet his eye but Havelock,
with his Bible and hymn-book before him, and
more than a hundred men seated around him,
giving earnest heed to his proclamation to
them of the glad tidings of great joy. How had
they got their light by which to read, for the
place was in dark shade ? They had obtained
lamps for the purpose, and putting them in
order, had lit them and placed them one l)y
one in an idol's lap. There they were, those
dumb but significant lamp-bearers, in constant
use; and there they were, we may be well
assured, to suggest stirring thoughts to the
lieutenant and his men."
Here is a subject worthy of a painter. The
city of Rangoon and its glory ; a young British
officer in a heathen temple with his Bible and
hymu-book before him, and more than a hun-
di'ed men seated around him, listening to the
4
74 THE CENTUEIO:^^ OF CAPERNAUM.
glad tidings of tlie Gospel, and tlie lamps tLat
gave tliem liglit shining out of tlie laps and
skulls of idols. Troops just led through the
fury and smoke of battle, here assembled for
prayer and singing psalms. This vras an ex-
traordinary sight. But it did not discpialify
either the men or their commanding officer for
the hardships and perils of war. The voice of
Havelock, so often heard in prayer to the
throne of grace in time of need, and in thanks-
giving after great deliverances, was strong and
steady in battle. When complaint was made
to the Governor-General of India against Have-
lock, that he was " a pietist," " a ranting Me-
thodist" or " a fanatic Baptist," and that he did
nothing but J)ray with his men and teacli them
to sing psalms, and that his highest aim was to
Jjajytize them, Lord Bentick having examined
into the subject, dismissed the complaint, say-
ing, he wished Havelock " had l^aptized the
whole army," for that, after a i-igid examina-
tion of the official records, he found that Have-
lock's saints were the most sober, obedient and
best behaved men in the regiment — " in short,
THE CEiS^TUEIOX OF CAPERl^AUM. '?5
tlic model soldiers of the army " — " and tliat
wlierever hard ii2:htiiio: was to be done, Have-
lock's saints were relied upon." Certainly, no
commander ever had the confidence and obedi-
ence of his men more fully than he had. He
was remarkable for the accuracy of his drill
and the rigidness of his discipline. 'No other
troops on earth have shown more coolness and
precision under the rattling hail of musketry,
nor amid the murderinoi: crash of ai'tillerv, nor
have any soldiers on earth surpassed Have-
lock's in the bayonet charge. Nov have we any
knowledge of braver men in action than Vicars
and Hammond before Sel)astopol, and Law-
rence and Ilavelock at Cawnpore and Luck-
now, and yet these men were distinguished as
men of prayer.
Some professions are, indeed, more favorable
to a religious life than others ; and yet it is in
these unfavorable ones some of the brightest
examples of the power of true godliness are
found. There the reigning of grace over
abounding sin has made it preeminent. The
more temptations men have to resist, the more
76 THE CEiS'TUEIOJS^ OF CAPERI^AILU.
evil propensities tliey have to subdue, tlie
more difficulties tliey have to struggle with,
the more is their success to be commended.
The more terrible the conflict, the brigliter the
victor's crown. Although the reputation of
Nazareth was proverl)ially bad, yet out of it
came the world's Redeemer. Shall we not,
then, be cautious in judging of professions and
classes, and not let our prejudices or passions
.lead us to erroneous, hasty, uncharitable judg-
ments ?
There are many more good and truly pious
people in the world than w^e generally suj)pose.
And there are a great many people that we
should love, if we only knew them better. All
men are not reprobates because some are. Ju-
das was one of the twelve, yet th<3 rest were
true men. Peter loved his Lord, though he
did once deny him, and is now no doubt a saint
in heaven, Avhether he ever w^as a Poj^e in
Home or not — perhaps all the better saint, be-
cause he was not. Arnold's treachery does not
prove that Washington did not love and serve
his country till his death. What, then, if
THE CEj^TURIOK OF CAPERNAUM. 77
some cliurcli members are rude, unpolislied, or
even starclied liypocrites, it does not follow
that Christianity is not the true religion. We
cannot have a community fit to live in until
the practice of wholesale slandering, and cruel,
rash, unfounded judgments are corrected. Pub-
lic sentiment must be elevated and purified
from the vulture-seeking of a neighbor's wrong-
doings, and by speaking only the truth, and
the truth only when necessary.
Third. Let us learn then to be more chari-
table. God is no res]3ecter of persons, but who-
soever feareth Him and worketh righteousness
is accepted of Him. Salvation is indeed of the
Jews, but not to be confined to them. It was
with them as a reservoir until the fulness of
time for causino; it to flow forth to all the
world. We rejoice that ours is not the only
true Church — that we have no patent for ours
as the only way to heaven. " Many," says our
Lord, " shall come from the east and the west,
and shall sit down with Aljraham, and Isaac,
and Jacob in the kinsfdom of heaven."
The centurion beimr a Koman — a Gentile —
Y3 THE CEIS^TURION OF CAPERKAUM.
sucli as the Jews considered altogetner ex
eluded from the privileges of Messiah's king-
dom, our Lord took the occasion to declare the
sovereign grace of God toward the Gentiles,
and to teach the Jews that their j)rejudice^s
were wrong, for that all parts, even the remo-
test quarters of the earth, should receive the
Gospel, and all nations flow into the kingdom
of God. And that the cliildren of tlie hingdom^ •
that is, the Jews who claimed to have a pecu-
liar and exclusive right to the privileges and
blessings of Messiah's kingdom, because they
were Abraham's descendants, sJiall he cast out
into outer darlvness : tliere sliall he tveejying and
gnashing of teeth. " Outer darkness and weep-
ing and gnashing of teetli " are a fearful image
of the wretchedness and woe of those vrho iixW
to enter the kino^dom of God. It is founded
upon the banquet-chamber of the preced-
ing verses, illuminated and filled with joyous
guests ; but outside, in the cold and cheerless
dark, where is nothing l)ut weeping and Avail-
ing and gnashing in rage and spite, are those
that considered themselves the favorites of
THE CENTUEION OF CAPEEKAUM. Y9
God, and sure of heaven, because of tlieir de-
scent from the patriarchs. Oh, how dreadful
to be an outcast from Grod's kino^dom ! How
awful will be the disapj)ointments of the day
of judgment!
Fourth. The proofs of the reality of this
miracle are easily apprehended. JSTo collusion
was possible. The household, the Jewish
rulers and the public are all acquainted with
the facts, and all admit the main j)<^iii^^7
namely : the centurion's servant is very ill — in
the very agony of death — and the centurion
coming to Jesus besought him to speak the
Avord only and his servant shall be healed.
And Jesus neither goes to his house nor touches
nor sees the dying servant, but speaks the
word and he is healed. Multitudes hear and
know and admit that all this was true. And
the common belief of all the people at that
time in Capernaum is embodied in the simple
and plain narrative of our evangelists. Christ-
ianity then is true. Jesus Christ is the Son of
God, and the Almighty Saviour of all who be-
believe in Him.
80 THE ce:n:tueion of cAPEPv:N^AU3r.
Fifth. Learn that disadvantages are not in
superable. Great difficnlties in onr way may
be overcome. Not only is to bear, to conquer
onr fate ; but to a heroic soul in the path of
duty, " Danger's self is lure alone." And the
greater the difficulties overcome in coming to
Jesus, the greater our faith. The early disad-
vantages of the centurion resulted in giving
superiority to his faith. His want of education
in the knowledge of the true religion in his
youth, and the unfavorable influences of his
profession, made his faith all the more dis-
tinctive. The proudest triumphs of art, science,
government and arms have been achieved by
men who have reached success not from aristo-
cratic loins, nor l^y royal road, but by overcom-
ino- almost insupera1)le difficulties. Tlie men
who iTile us from their urns, and who had,
while living, the greatest influence u2:)on man-
kind, wci^e self-made men — men who have pur-
sued knowledge, truth and godliness under
difficulties — who have risen superior to gi*eat
disadvantages — who have carved their way
to fame and fortune with their own hands.
THE CENTURION OF CAPERNAUM. 81
We must strive to enter in, if ^ve would be
saved.
Sixth. In our Lord's commendation of the
centurion, we see that it is according to the
degree of a man's faith, that he is to be esti-
mated. As if he had said he is the strono^est
man who has the most faith, for faith takes
hohl of omnipotence. The words, Verily,' I
say inito yon, are intended to mark the com-
mendation of the centurion's faith as something
special His faith was stronger than that of
the nobleman who had come to Jesus for his
dying child. We read of others who apy)lied,
saying : " If thou canst do anything, have com-
passion on us and help us." And the sisters
of Bethany said, "Lord, if thou hadst been
here, my brother had not died." And the
fjxther of the demoniac in agony and in uncer-
tainty, cried out: "I believe, help thou my
unl^elief." But none of them said, Speah the
word only, and the work of mercy is done.
Martha and Mary seem, like the nobleman, to
have thought our Lord's bodily presence neces-
sary to heal. But the centurion lias no if nor
82 THE CENTUEION OF CAPEFwNAUM.
idea of sj)ace in liis faith, and hence oiir Lord's
commendation was nnqualiiied. His faith was
unparalleled in Christ's power to lieal at a dis-
tance, and without any personal contact.
Seventh, As the centurion's mind naturally
run in the channel of his profession, and as in
casting about for expressions or terms in which
to 'declare his faith in Jesus, we find him build-
ing his faith upon the elements which his pro-
fession readily furnished, and declaring his
faith by the forms of sj^eech which his own
mode of life suggested; so we should learn
from his case, that God accepts our faith and
our profession of our trust in him even when
it is drawn out in the form of our callino: or
mode of life. The rules of military science
among the Komans gave form to his profession
of faith.''^ He felt and believed in the presence
and power of the Roman emperor, though his
person was not in Capernaum. As an officer
in the army, he was under a present will,
thoui^h no bodilv form was present; and so
* " Scd banc excoptionem concoquit sapientia fidelis ex ruditate
militari pulcbre cluccns." — Bekgel.
THE CENTUEION OF CAPEENAmr. ^ 83
lie helieved that Jesus could heal without per-
sonal contact. Nor is this the only instance.
The heavens are always telling the gloiy of
God. The daisy and the dewdrop declare the
presence of God as well as the mightiest planet
in tlie highest heavens. 'Nov is there any trade,
calling or profession that is according to the
laws of God, that may not in its way educate
our soul for God and immortality, wdiile it
enables us to gain an honest living in the
body. Perha23S we may illustrate this from
the case of the shepherds and of the wise men
of the East. Shepherds, like sailors, are close
observers of the weather, winds and skies.
They are proverbially superstitious, as people
also usually are w^ho dwell much alone among
the mountains. To them the sighing of the
storm, the moaning of the night winds, the
clouds wreathino; themselves around the head-
lands, or rolling up in columns, and marching
off in unequalled grandeur over the mountains
— all seem to be instinct with more than mor-
tal life. It was natural, therefore, if such an
expression may be used, where all was super-
84 THE CENTURION OF CAPErwNAUjM.
natural., tliat tlie voice of angels slioukl come
to the shepherds on the winds from the melo-
dies of the skies: "A multitude of the heaven-
ly hosts praising God, and saying, glory to
God in the highest, and on earth peace, good
will toward m-en." They heard the glad tidings
of a Saviour born, while watching their flocks
by night on the Bethlehem plains— while en-
gaged in their humble, honest occupation.
And so of the Magi. In the clear starlit skies
of the East, where one seems almost to see
throuirh the cerulean vaults to the eternal
throne, the wise men were engaged in their
profession, which was the study of the heavenly
hosts, and v/hile engaged in this study, a star
is sent to guide them to the infant Iledeemer.
And so should it be with all our pursuits,
whereby we make a living, and are brought
into contact with. the laws of God. Tlie mnn
that spades up' the ground and sows the seed,
and he who converts the solid rock into lime,
and he who builds the brick with mortar into
a solid wall ; and the sunburnt sickle-man, and
the hard-handed miner, who grinds the gold
THE CENTURION OF CAPERNAUM. 85
from the quartz, or attracts it from tlie sandy
mass, no less tlian the electrician and astrono-
mer, are all working witli and by the laws of
the Creator. The ladder by which IN'ewton
climbed from his apple-tree to the outposts of
the universe was made by the laws of God.
The Almighty vrent before him and laid his
hand upon all sj^ace and matter, or the philoso-
pher could never have climbed to the limits of
our system. And shall we not adore the wis-
dom, the goodness, and the sovereign grace of
God, that makes a man's business for him — so
that it is a school for him, both for this life as
well as for the life to come ? Our callins: or
pursuit in life should be according to the will
of God, and then our diligence in business, as
well as our fervency in spirit, will ])e a means
of grace — in both we shall serve the Lord. It
is intended to educate us for heaven as well as
gain for us a living upon earth. It is possible
for us to make the best of both worlds. The
Koman soldier read throuofh the reflations of
the art of war a jr^ersonal will^ and he knew
that his authority extended in like manner to
86 THE CEjS^TUEION of CAPER]S^AU3r.
those that were placed under him ; and in the
unity and harmony, variety and yet concentra-
tion, movement, strategy, logistics and tactics
of an army, he saw clearly the presence of an
all-controlling, designing, supreme mind. And
all this process he transferred to Jesus, and
made all the invisible world as subordinate to
him, as the inferiors of an army are to the
commanding officer.
Wonderful is the condescension of our
Maker ! We are indeed j)oor, feeble creatures.
We are almost invisible particles in the vast
universe, yet each one of us is so bound up
with other atoms in the divine volume of Di-
vine beaievolence and omni23otence, that not
one of us is forgotten before God. The hairs
of our head are numbered by him. The spar-
ro^v, though not remarkable for plumage or
voice, cannot fall to the ground without the
permission of our Heavenly Father, and then
•falls accordimr to his laws. But we are of
much more value tlian many sparrows. There
is no pL'ice beyond the jurisdiction of our
blessed Creator. There is no escaping, or
THE CEXTUEIOX OF CAPEEXAUM. 87
being exiled out of liis reach, nor beyond liis
eye. His laws are all around iis. Xor is there
in all the amplitude of the universe, a flower
or a star, a spear of grass, an insect, an atom
or a planet, that does not teach us the pres-
ence of God's laws, and illustrate the beauty
of holiness, and the suldime lessons of the
Cross. It is not then incredible that a beetle
should have heeii commissioned to teach the
way to a crown, and a little moss in an African
desert should have j)reached the presence and
goodness of God to a wearied and exhausted
traveller when he lay down to die ; but thus
having his faith strengthened he put his trust
in Him, who had made so tiny and beautiful a
thing to grow in so vast and dreary a solitude,
and revived and lived. It is an evidence of
Divine goodness, that we may And " sermons
in stones," theology in a crawling beetle, or in
a desert moss, and " good in everything."
Eighth. As the success of faith rests upon
the power of Him in whom it is exercised, so it
is instantaneous. Christ is able and willing to
save to the uttermost all that come to God
8S THE CEXTURIOX OF CAPERNAUM.
througli Him. And wliosocver comes to Him,
He will in no wise cast out. All our liope is
in God. All our safety is in Him. The pro-
mise is, if we believe. Tlie result of true faitli
is immutably certain. Christ is sufficient. So
Jesus said unto the centurion, " Go thy A\ay ;
and, as thou hast believed, so be it done unto
thee." Our Lord condescended to comply with
his terms. The centurion did not ask him to
o'o to his house. He did not enter it. He
asked Jesus simply to speak the word. Jesus
did speak the word, and his servant was healed
^' in the selfsame hour." The recovery Avas im-
mediate. So the poor leper was cured instan-
taneously, who had come saying, " Lord, if thou
wilt, thou canst make me clean.*' ''As thou
hast believed, so be it done." Happily for us
the simplicity of faith requires not the mastery
of any system of doctrines nor the acquisition
of any learned science. We are not to wait to
know w^hat faith is, but receive Christ as He is
offered to lis, and we have a Saviour. It is
not by merely consenting to receive as true a
system of doctrines, l)ut by receiving the great
THE CEXTUEIOX OF CAPEEXAOI. 89
Kedeemer liimself tliat we are saved. Tlie sud-
denness of the cm-e of the centurion's servant,
the time when it happened, and the working
of the miracle without any prescription or any
kind of medical treatment had a convincing*
effect upon the j)eople. And perhaps in no
other case is the saving power, or the simpli-
city of faith, more happily illustrated than in
this one. Faith is confidence, trust. It takes
hold upon Ilim who is invisible and yet able
to save to the uttermost all that come to Him.
" If thou canst believe, all things are possible
to him that believeth." "He that believeth
shall be saved, and he that believeth not shall
be damned." " He that believeth on the Son
hath everlasting life, and he that believeth not
shall not see life." " All things whatsoever ye
ask in prayer, l3elieving, ye shall receive."
Marie xvi. IG ; Johi iii. 36; JlattJi. xxi. 22;
Horn. X.
But what are all these promises, if we no not
feel our need of salvation ? Is it true that you
feel yourself to be a poor, miserable sinner ?
Then Jesus, in whom the centurion believed,
90 THE CENTURION OF CAPERNAUM.
lias come to seek and save you. lie offers him-
self to you as an Almiglity Saviour. You are
novf called to repent and believe, and tlirow
yourself into tlie outstretclied arms of mercy.
No matter liow humble your employment may
be — no matter Low liigli and honorable it may
be, you have only to accept of Jesus Christ as
He is offered in the Gospel, and you will find
peace and salvation. Have you received Him ?
Will you trust in Him ?
THE CENTUKION COMMAISTDING AT THE CEUCI-
EIXION.
Now when the centurion, and they that were with him, watching
Jesus, saw the earthquake, and those thing-^ that were done, they
feared greatly, saying, Truly this was the Son of God. — Matth. xxvii,
54.
And when the centurion, which stood over against him, saw that
he so cried out, and gave up the ghost, he said, Truly this man was
the Son of God.— J/«r/j xv. 39.
Now when the centurion saw what was done, he glorified God, say-
ing, certainly this was a righteous man. — Luke xxiii. 47. .
These verses manifestly describe tlie effect
of tlie scenes of the crucifixion on the mind of
Koman officer in command, and having- charg-e
of the execution of the sentence of death
passed upon our Lord.
Jlie centurion ivldcli stood over against Jiim,
in fall sio'ht of liim, or standincr in front of him.
This was the natural and necessary j)osition of
the officer presiding at such an execution. And
92 THE CEXTUEION AT THE CRUCIFIXIOIs\ .
from it Ave see that the centurion had the cir-
cnmstances of the crucifixion under his own
personal observation. The whole scene was
before him ; and when he saw lio^v Jesus ex-
pired after he had cried out, he exclaimed:
" Truly this man was the Son of God." As if .
he had said, This is a most extraordinary case.
This very man, against whom so much has
been said, and who has been so cruelly treated,
and so shamefully put to death as an impostor,
must have been what he said he was — tlie Son
of God.
This testimony, therefore, was the honest
conviction of his own mind from wdiat he him-
self had seen and heard. Nor was he alone.
N'ow ivlieii the centurion^ and tliey that icere
with him^ watching Jesus, saw the earthquake^
and those things that were done, they feared
greatly, saying, Tridnj this teas the Son of God,
Probably only four soldiers were emj)loyed
in nailing Jesus to the cross ; but a consider-
al)le nund;er, perhaps his whole command,
acted under the centurion as the guard, and
watched him while he was hanofinir on the tree.
THE CEXTUniOX AT THE CKTJCIFIXIO^S-. 93
And tlius it was that no ])art of the Gos2:)el his-
tory is destitute of eye witnesses. The centu-
rion is considered by some as having made his
declaration heccmse Christ spoke with a loud
voice and expired, and that he simply exj)ressed
his astonishment that Christ should have had
so much strength after such suffering and ex-
haustion. It was true that our Lord did not
die of mere exhaustion, or from faintness and
want of strength. For he gave up his life.
He died voluntarily. Others, however, think
the centurion meant to applaud our Lord for
his constancy in calling upon the name of God
to the last moment.
But it seems to us we are to take his confes-
sion as the utterance of a conviction produced
in his mind by all that he saAV and heard, by
the miracles and the Avords of Christ applied
to his conscience by the Spirit of God. More
literally, having thus cried out^ not having
reference merely to the last exj)iring agony,
but to the previous cry of " Eloi, Eloi, lama
sabachthani." The sense seems to be this :
when the centurion saw what was done, and
9 J: THE CET^TUEION AT THE CRUCIJ'IXIOIS'.
heard wliat our Lord said, and felt the thi'oes
of the earthquake, and heard wliat had hap-
pened in the temple and among the dead in the
neiirhborino: tombs, and then turnino; to Jesus
saw that lie had given up the ghost, and while
looking on his dead body as it hung there on
the cross, where only the bodies of slaves and
of the vilest wretches were wont to be found,
he exclaimed : " Truly this man was the Son of
God."
There is lio contradiction between the state-
ments of the three evangelists, neither as to
vvliat was said, nor what was omitted, nor as to
whom what was said is attributed. Matthew
says, " wlien the centurion and tliey that Avere
with him, watching Jesus, saw the earthqua]art no more religion than beasts ; they had as
THE CEXTUPvIOjS^ OF CESAREA. 133
great care of innoceiicy as ciit-tliroats, for wliicli
cause tlie virtues of Cornelius deserve tlie
greater commendation, in tliat leading a sol-
dier's life, whicli was at tliat time most corrupt,
lie served God liolily, and lived amongst men
witliout doing any hurt or injury." His piety
is, moreover, tlie more remarkable because tlie
lives of tlie leading professors of tlie Hebrew
religion at that time were anything else than
commendable. Instead of alluring the heathen
among them to the worship of the true God by
their sincerity, humility and charity, the Scribes
and Pharisees were censorious, proud, cold, for-
mal and hypocritical. But he feared Godivith
all Ids liouse^ that is, family. This means that
he governed and instructed them. True piety
is always accompanied by a sincere desire for
the salvation of others, especially of those with
whom Ave are closely connected, or for whose
Avelfare we feel especially responsible. How-
ever it may have been with other Koman oiS-
cers, this one, in fearing God himself, was suc-
cessful in malvino: his sentiments and conduct
prevail over his household. Nor was his influ-
134 THE CENTUEIOJS^ OF CESAEEA.
eiice confined to Lis own house — for lie gave
niucJi alms to tlie ])eople. Alms liere are used by
a figure of speech for all that a charitable and
bountiful man, with the love of God in his
heart, would do for his fellow-men. " Blessed
is he that considereth the poor : the Lord will
deliver him in the time of trouble." — Psalm
xli. 1.
And grayed to God always — that is, con-
tinually. He observed the regular seasons of
prayer — did not neglect the morning and even-
ing sacrifices. "Kejoice," says Paul, "in hope;
patient in tribulation; continuing instant in
prayer." And our Lord has taught us that
men ought always to pray and not to faint.
Luke xviii., and also 1 Tliess. vi. Daniel
j)rayed three times every day. The early
Christians were careful to pray at the third,
sixth and ninth hours ; that is, at nine, twelve
and three. It is also to be remembered that
Cornelius, as a soldier and an officer on duty,
had much to do, and many hindrances to over-
come ; but while he was faithful, punctual and
prompt in tlie duties of his office, he could also
THE CENTURION OF CESAEEA. 135
find time for prayer. His heart was always in
a praying mood. If we incline our ear nnto
wisdom, and apply our heart to understanding ;
if we cry after knowledge, and lift up our voice
for understanding ; if we seek it as silver and
searcli for wisdom as for liidden treasures ; tlien
we shall know the peace of the Lord, and lind
the knowledge of God. Prov. ii. 2-5. Blessed
are they that keep his testimonies, and that
seek him with the whole heart. Ps. cxix. 2.
It is a happy remark of Clirysostoin^ the
golden mouthy that the Ethioj^ian eunuch, treas-
urer of Queen Candace, and the Centurion Cor-
nelius, are not mentioned because of their offi-
cial rank and station, but because their official
duties and rank did not hinder them from serv-
ing God. If there is not as much j^iety, there-
fore, in the army and navy as we should expect
from the education, profession and j)osition of
the officers and men, it is not for the want of
examples in both ancient and modern times.
It may indeed be true, that the precariousness
of life amid the dangers of war, instead of
awakening the mind to a proper preparation
136 THE CENTUEIOT^ OF CESAEEA.
for eternity, is turned into an argmnent for ne-
glecting religion, if not made a plea for dissipa-
tion. It is a well known fact that in some of
our cities nearness of tlie graveyard raises a
suspicion of low morals — tliat 2:>lagues and epi-
demics, instead of reforming a city, liave been
noted for prevailing violence and licentiousness.
AYe know liistorically tkat tliis lias been true
of Jerusalem, Bagdad, Cairo, London, and of
some cities on our own continent. A most
remarkable instance of tliis is seen in the his-
tory of Florence in the fourteenth century, when
the plague almost de23opulated the city and
surrounding country; and yet the morals of
the survivors grew worse and worse as the
plague raged the more and more deadly. The
tales of Boccaccio illustrate that familiarity with
sickness and death, exposure to shame and
peril, does not convert men. 'Nor are the judg-
ments of God miracles of themselves sufficient
to bring men to salvation. They always har-
den rather than soften, unless accompanied by
the grace of God. It is at least painfully true
that the hazards of military life do not always
THE CE^^TUEIO]^ OF CESAEEA. 137
make men mindful of tlieir duty to God. Still,
as a class, tliey are not excluded from tlie offer
of the Gospel. Nor is it right that prejudices
against any class of men or profession should
be a hindrance in their way to salvation. • It is
certainly not an impossibility to belong to the
military profession and at the same time he
truly pious. It may require much courage to
d\yell in camps and resist temptations to evil
doing ; yet it is hardly worse than to be a law-
yer or a merchant. Opportunities for sinning
and temptations to A\Tong-doing are in all occu-
pations and in every one's path. But a long
list of military and naval heroes could be given
who were as remarkable for their piety as for
their success in war. It is never proper to
allow our prejudices to be excited against men
as classes or professions that are not in them-
selves sinful.
VII.
THE CEKTUEIO]^ OF CESAEEA CONTINUED.
Having considered this Koman officer as a
subject of divine grace — liis antecedents and
circumstances, we proceed :
2. — Tlie Means or Agents em/ployed to hring
about and develop Ms Conversion to Christ-
ianitij.
In liis case we are not told when lie was
"effectually called," or regenerated; but we
may see clearly tliat his regeneration was be-
fore his conversion. In fact, he was pious be-
fore he knew what conversion meant. He was
devout and feared God, and gave alms and
prayed always and constrained his household
to do likewise, before he knew anything of the
Gospel as a system of divine grace. Not, in-
deed, l)efore his heart was under divine iniiu-
138
THE CENTURION OF CESAEEA. 139
ence, but before lie knew anything of tlie proofs
that Jesus was the Messiah, and that salvation
was only through him. A child eats bread
and is nourished by it long before he knows
how to analyze the bread and call it by its
chemical names. And we breathe the air, and
live upon it, and may never be able to describe
it philosojDhically. So in Cornelius we iind the
evidences of divine grace before he has learned
how or whence he received it. How far God
sends his Holy Spirit to ojDen the hearts of the
heathen, who are without the Gospel or his
written Word, we cannot say. It is not for us,
however, to limit the Holy One. And though
divine influence is to be ex23ected chiefly in
connection with the Word read and preached,
3^et the Holy Ghost is not dependent on the
Scriptures. The holy Scriptures have not
created the Holy Spirit. On the contrary, the
Scriptures were written by men moved thereto
by the Holy Sj^irit. AYe dare not afiirm — we
do not believe that God cannot convert and
save men without his written Word. Still, it
is true that it is chiefly by his Word read
140 THE CEjS^TUEIO]^ OF CESAEEA.
and preaclied tliat men are converted and
saved.
In Cornelins, we can see liow liis mind might
be led tlirougli tlie whole process of conviction
for sin, and to faith and repentance without his
ever having learned to distinguish theologically
between regeneration and conversion — convic-
tion natural and saving, repentance legal and
repentance evangelical. A man may plough and
plant and reap, who knows nothing of the
scientific nomenclature of as^ricultural chemist-
ry. We must not suppose, however, that Cor-
nelius was a pious man at or from his natural
birth; nor that he was made pious by the
mere culture of military discipline. However
much his education may have done for him —
still his military code did not produce his piety.
The efficient cause of his piety was supernatu-
ral before he ever heard of Peter or the Holy
Ghost, and it was produced by means. And
in his case, the means were the light of Nature,
the teachings of conscience and of tradition, and
the direct influence of the spirit of God by and
with and through these instruments upon his
THE CEXTUrvIO:S' OF CESAEEA. 141
heart. We do not, tlierefore, look for, nor do
we iind in tlie wonderful narrative before ns
any metaphysical or formal account of this
man's regeneration. All Ave have is a very
brief statement of the effects of his re2:enera-
tion, namely, , his conversion to Christ. That
is, of his embracing Christianity as preached
by the Apostle. 'Novi, as the power of mag-
netism is one thing, and the actual turning of
the needle to the pole is another; and as the
law, power, nature, or whatever it is that is in
the sun-fl-ower that causes its attraction toward
the sun, is quite a different thing from, but
essential to the flower's turning its face toward
and folio wins; the sun : so reo-eneration and
conversion are inseparable, but distinct. Cor-
nelius was a pious man, but not converted to
Christianity before he heard Peter preach. God
had touched his heart, and noAV the effect is
seen.
The :mea]S's of his conveesioist, then, were
extraordinary and ordinary — supernatural and
common. Human and divine ao-ency wrouixht
effectually and in j)erfect harmony, and without
142 TIIE CEIS^TUEIOI^ OF CESAREA.
any violence to tlie freedom of tLe liuman will.
And tlie agencies employed in tliis case were
precisely tlie same tliat are employed now in
every essential, tliougli the details and minor
agents are different.
He saw in a vision. Verse 3. EicliLorn, Ro-
senmuller and others say in a dream. And
Heinrich will have it nothing hut a com-
mon dream, which, however, Storr has a])ly
refuted. The language does not suggest a
dream. It was not the time for sleej) or dreams.
It was at the hour of j)rayer, the ninth hour,
when it was full daylight, that the angelic vis-
ion appeared. Cornelius was not only awake,
but engaged in the most solemn prayer of the
day.
Commentators have enumerated seven ways
in which God formerly revealed himself to men,
namely : by dreams ; by apparitions while they
were awake ; by visions while they slept ; by a
voice from heaven ; by the Urim ; by inspira-
tion or auricular revelation, and by ecstasy or
rapture, by which a man was snatched up into
heaven, ^vhich Lightfoot says was " of all other
THE CEjN^TURION OF CESARExV. 143
modes the most excellent." See Rev, i. 10 ;
2 Cor. xii. 2.
Evidently — manifestly, not dimly or doubt-
fully — lie was conscious of eveiytliing and per-
fectly sure of what lie saw. It was not liliely
that a Roman officer, at such an hour, or under
such circumstances, could have been d^eceived
or imposed upon.
An angel of God from heaven — one of those
that attend around his throne as his ministers,
waiting to do his will. The same angel, j)ro-
bably, who appeared to Manoah, Moses, Daniel,
and Zachariah. This messenger from the world
of superhuman spirits appeared clothed as a
man ; generally at first mistaken for a man of
God, that is, one of the prophets. So Manoah
thought at first the angel that appeared to him
was a man of God. The popular idea that an-
gels always appeared with wings is erroneous.
The cherubim and seraphim had wings, and pro-
bably it is from them this idea that angelic
visitors to earth are always represented as hav-
iniy wino-s has obtained. But the an^^els thafc
appeared to Abraham to tell him a])out Sodom
144 THE CENTUEION OF CESAKEA.
and Goniorrali had no winsrs. Tliere is some-
tiling unartistic and absurd in tlie pictures of
Old Testament ans^els that we sometimes see — •
walkinir on the earth and with men and like
men, except that their wings are son^ehow
folded up on their backs or over their shoulders.
The true representation of angelic visitors to
man is to clothe theni in the ordinary dress of
the religious teachers of the people to whom
they were sent.
The vision was to him as an oracle from God
— not in the night season, but in open day-
light — and accompanied with such seals or
assurances, or marks of certainty imprinted
upon his mind, as left him in no doubt of its
truthfulness. It was not an illusion, but a
reality. It was a vision from God. The fear
that seized him when the vision appeared, was
that of a brave and sensible man. Perceivins:
that it Avas God that had sent the vision, and
that he had now to deal with Him, he very
properly asked: What is if, Lord? Lord
here is no more than our Sir. And the an-
gel answered: "Thy prayers and thine alms
THE CENTUKION OF CESAKEA. 145
liave corae up for a memorial before God."
Verse 4.
Co7ne U2? is an allusion to tlie offering up of
incense, whose fragrance and smoke ascended
toward lieaven, and were then considered as
acceptable to God.
If'or a memorial— that is, are remembered
before God. The force of this assurance lies in
the fact, that as he was a Gentile, had not been
circumcised, and did not conform to the rites
of the Mosaic law, he was still in doubts whether
his prayers were* heard, or his alms accepted as
evidences of his faith and piety. The angel's
words were, therefore, peculiarly fit words for
Cornelius. And they, moreover, contain a great
truth as to the divine method of dealing with
mankind: that God prefers the offering of the
heart to external forms, however imposing or
ceremonious, however pompous and costly.
God requireth not so much sacrifice, nor whole
burnt offerings, but obedience.
jLnd now send men to Joppa — a seaport to^vn
distant about thirty-five miles, the nearest port
to Jerusalem on the Mediterranean. This is
7
146 THE CENTUEION OF CESAEEA.
doubtless one of tlie oldest towns in tlie world.
Its origin is lost in the twilig^lit of time. Its
antiquity is lost in a mass of classic fahles.
Pliny asserts tliat it existed before tlie Deluge.
Many Greek and Jewish traditions may be
found tliat ascribe its foundation to Noah, and
say that he built the ark here. We know at
least that it was a city at the conquest of
Joshua. To this port Hiram, King of Tyre,
sent the lumber from the mountains of Leba-
non for the building of Solomon's temple, and
from hence it was caiTied up by animals to the
holy city. This city is mentioned in the his-
tory of the Asmonean princes ; but is referred
to in the ISTew Testament only in connection
with Peter's visit. Here he raised Tabitha
from the dead, and was lodging when the cen-
turion sent for him. We have found Jonah,
the old Hebrew missionary to Nineveh, taking
ship at this port to flee from the Lord. In the
Crusades, and in Napoleon's Syrian wars, Joppa
was a place of importance. It is still a town
of about 5,000 inhabitants, one-fourth of whom
are reckoned to be Christians.
THE CEiSTTURIOX OF CESAKEA. 147
And call 'for one Simon, ivliose surname is
Peter: lie lodgetli loitli one Simon, a tanner.
Our word tanner comes from tayvit, cognate
with Frencli teindre, to stain. Tlie Greek word
used liere is hurseus, wliicli means a sMniier
— tliat is, of animals ; and liere used in the
sense of a skin-softener, a leather-maker, a tan-
ner. This occupation was not highly esteemed
by the ancients. Simon was probably one of
the early converts to Christianity. In ancient
times tanners used have their houses and work-
shops, as is common with us, out of the city, or
apart from the main crowded thoroughfares, on
account of the fetid odor arising; from the dead
animals and raw hides, and near rivers for the
convenience of water. At Joppa may mean
no more than that he was near to it,' or in
the suburbs. The Hebrew Mislina required
all such emplo}anents to be carried on at some
distance from the towns.
In Europe and the East it is common to
give a specific address to every letter, and to
describe in all legal documents a man's rank,
occupation or profession. A. B. is a gentle-
148 THE CENTURIOISr OF CESAEEA.
man. C. D. is a barrister at law. E. F. is a
medical man. G. H. is a weaver, a farmer,
a machinist, or a currier or tanner. And so
in passports from one government to another.
Simon a tanner is designated. He resides there
and is known. Peter was only there on a
visit, and his profession was not known, at
least not among the people. If Cornelius had
sent for Peter tlie Foj^e^ he would not have
found him even to this day, or even for Peter
tlie Apostle^ he would not have found him. His
messengers, however, did find Simon a tanner,
and Simon Peter upon his housetop engaged in
prayer. Observe all these characters are re-
markable for j)rayer and for visions. Cornelius
prays, and has a vision to send for Peter. Pe-
ter is praying when the messengers arrive, and
falling into a trance, has a vision by which he
is convinced that he ou2:ht to c^o with them.
Peter's host was a poor man ; he probably had
no prophet's chamber ; no upper room for his
accommodation. It was common, however, in
that country, for the people to retire to their
housetops for meditation, rest or prayer. This
THE CENTUEION OF CESAEEA. 149
»•
custom is often alluded to in tlie Bible. Tlie
tops of the houses in the East are flat. A tra-
velle]' may now go almost all over the city of
Cairo, Damascus, or Jerusalem, on the roofs of
houses, without ever descending to the streets.
He fell into a trance. Verse 10. Greek is,
there fell on him an ecstasy, which seems to
mean a preternatural state of mind, which was
intended to prej^are him for the vision. In this
kind of a trance the mind seems to retire from
the body, and to be wholly absorbed with^ spi-
ritual or internal objects ; a rapture of soul giv-
inof the face a look of astonishment, and render-
ing the subject for the time insensible to exter-
nal objects, or to anything else than the subject
then occuj)ying the soul. The books mention
many extraordinary cases, which it is impossi-
ble fully to understand or explain with our
present knowledge of the connection that sub-
sists between the mind and the external world,
the soul and the body. The whole subject of the
connection of the mind and the body is yet to be
studied. I should not wonder if we are on the
eve of great discoveries in religious psychology.
150 THE CENTURIOI^ OF CESAEEA.
Please read liere verses 9 2?o 33, inclusive.
Observe tlieir address and skill in oj^ening tlieir
errand to Peter. And tlieij said^ Cornelius tlie
centurion^ a just man^and one that fear etli God^
and of good report among all tlie nations of the
Jews^ was loarned from God hy an holy angel
to semi for thee into his hoiise^ and to hear words
of tliee. Tliis is one of tlie most liappily con-
ceived and snccessfully applied addresses in
tlie world. They admit at once that their mas-
ter is a Eoman officer, but to remove the preju-
dices Avhich might be in Peter's mind as a Jew
against him, they sa}^, although lie is a centu-
rion, he is a just man — though an officer in the
Eonian army that lias conquered and still holds
your country in subjection, he is a man of inte-
grity and courtesy, and he fears God and wor-
ships the one living and true God of the Jews ;
lie is not a cruel, savage idolater ; and Le has
an excellent reputation among your own coun-
tiymen ; and God has sent liis holy angel to
tell him to send for thee ; and to send for thee
to come into liis house, to hear words of thee.
The point made was very strong. God had
THE CENTUEIO]^ OF CESAEEA. 151
shown so much resrard for Cornelius as to send
an holy angel from heaven to tell him to send
for Peter, and to tell Peter that he must go to
the Roman officer's, quarters, and there preach
to him al>out Jesus. The message was from
heaven. Peter was cei-tainly called of God to
go to Cesarea^ And remembering Peter's vision
on the housetop, we are not surprised 'that in
spite of his prejudices, he was convinced and
went.
Tlien called lie tliem in,, and lodged them.
And on tlte morrow Peter went away with
ilicm^ and certain hrethren from Jopjya acconh
panied them.
As a matter of respect to Peter, Cornelius
had sent two of his household, and a devout
soldier as a guard. The roads were not free
from robbers. In the East a person seldom
travels alone. They are from habit, if not from
necessity, a gregarious people. They live in vil-
lages. Their transactions and journeys are
always made in companies. It will frequently
happen, if you ask a man why he came to the
place where you find him, he will point to an
152 THE CENTUEIO:sr OF CESAPwEA.
otlier man who seems to be tlie greater busi-
ness man, and say, I came because lie did. In
tlie East, if a man go to a court of justice, lie is
followed by as many of his acquaintances as
possible, who canvass all the i3robabilities of
his case, and have a salvo for every exigency,
and a salaxtm for every one they dare to hope
they can influence in his behalf. They are
warm-tempered and social in their habits, and
then it is always necessary to have witnesses to
all and everything that is said and done. This
custom explains the importance attached in the
Bible to the company a man keeps, and the
solemn warnings given against evil companions.
Nor are these Avarnings any the less importarit
now and among us. One sinner destroy eth
nmch good. The companion of fools shall be
destroyed.
Certain hretliTen went with Peter. How
many we do not know. Perhaps six. It was
respectful to Cornelius for Peter to have some
friends with him. His companions were no
doubt also, at least in part, acquainted with
his trance and vision. And as l^e was ejoing
THE CENTURIOIS^ OF CESAEEA. 153
on a new and difficult mission, they went witli
him to comfort liim, and be witnesses of wliat
sliould befall liim, or of what lie should do.
And surely it was a gracious Providence that
moved tliem to go with him. It was desirablo
they should be witnesses of his reception by
Cornelius, and of his preaching, and of the
grace of God shown to the centurion ; and be
able to testify of these things when Peter
should be called to an account by his country-
men for having gone among the Gentiles. And
now, before we enter upon the consideration of
Peter's sermon, let us gather up some reflections
from the history. And
First. As Peter stands before us, we have an
admirable example of piety, zeal and faitliful-
ness. He is engaged in his proper mission at
Joppa — earnestly praying when he fixlls into a
trance, receives a vision from heaven, and is
prepared to understand the messengers of Cor-
nelius, who were then just arrived in Jopj)a.
And when he readied Cesarea, and Cornelius
tells him all that he had done, and all that had
been told to him, and says to him : " And thou
154 THE cekturio:n^ of cesaeea.
hast well done that thou art come. Now, there-
fore, are we all here present before God, to hear
all things that are commanded thee • of God ;
then Peter oj)ened his mouth and said — preach-
ing peace by Jesus Christ," etc. Peter was far
from being sinless, but he was a man of prayer
and of earnest simplicity. Like David, he
j)rayed and called uj)on God evening and morn-
ing ; and as more is given to him that hath,
that is, to him that uses aright what he has, so
we find the enlightening, converting process
carried on in Peter's mind imtil he has over-
come his narrow prejudices against the Gen-
tiles, and with a clear conscience opens to them
the kingdom of Christ. That which at first he
could not at all a2:)prehend — ^^vliich was dark
and unaccountable — is made plain. And just
so it was with the Roman officer. He is dili-
gent in the use of the best means and of all the
light he ]]as, and then more is given to liim.
In j)roportion as vre are willing to know tlie
truth, and seek for it witli an honest heart as
for liidden treasure, in the same proportion we
shall find it and be sanctified hy it. It is l)y
THE CENTURION OF CESAEEi^. 155
the trutli we are to be made free from the
bondage of error and the tyranny of Satan. If
any man, says our Lord, will do the will ol
God he shall know of the doctrine, whether it
be of God or not..
Second. We have here a beautiful union of
personal and relative duties. This Roman offi-
cer " feared God with all his house." So did
Abraham, and for it he received special divine
commendation, and so did Joshua and Lydia.
There is nothing more imj)ortant to the well-
being of cities and states than family religion.
The purity and intelligence of our families lie
at the very foundation of our social and civil
prosjDerity. The elements of our strength are
in our families. One of the greatest causes of
social degradation and political insubordination
is the want of family religion and instruction.
Public schools, Sunday schools, and the press
and the pulpit are powerless without the co-
ojDeration of parents. The fountains that flow
over tlie land, coverim^ it in all its leno^li and
breadth, rise in our households and receive
their qualities of good or evil chiefly where
156 TIEE CENTUEIOIN" OF CESAEEA.
tliey first break forth. Parents are teacliers by
tlieir example ; but tliis is not enougli. Tliey
must do as well as teacli. Tliey must govern,
restrain and instruct. Every parent is called
upon by all tlie love lie Las £or liis cliild and
for bis country, and as be values liis soul, to
say like Josbua, " as for me and my bouse, we
will serre tlie Lord."
" They who rock the cradle rule the world."
Third, ^\e have bere tbe union of piety
and morality. Cornelius gave alms to all tbe
people, and be prayed to God always. Piety
and morality are botb blessed realities, but
tbey must not be- confounded. A pious man
must be a moral man, but a man may be re-
spectable in bis morals wlio is not pious. A
man may reform himself from bad habits be-
cause he finds they are injurious to his reputa-
tion and his health. And this is Avell, and in
so far he is to be commended ; but before lie
can claim to be pious, he must fear God and
pray to Ilim, and put his trust for salvation in
the Lord Jesus Christ as lie is offered in the
THE CENTURIOiSr OF CESAEEA. 157
Gospel. Piety is a living reality — a beauty
that is " a joy forever." It is more than the
forms of a ritual. It is a dynamic power that
permeates the whole man from the heart out-
ward. But as fatal errors are common on this
subject, let us look at it for a few moments.
Some seem to think they must be Christians,
and talk of their communion with God, who
are cruel, hard-hearted, close-handed and unjust.
But this cannot be so. They are deceived.
God never joined such things together. " Who-
so," saith an apostle, " hath this world's goods,
and seeth his brother have need, and sluitteth
up his bowels of compassion from him, how
dwelleth the love of God in him ?" Others are
amiable and well to do in the world, and have
a fair reputation with their fellow-men, but
they live without God. Their Maker is not in
all their thoughts. They have no love for Je-
sus Christ. They are dead in trespasses and in
8ins. Indulging their sensual passions, tliey
vainly hope, by a few gifts of charity, to cover
a multitude of sins. • But what saitli the Bible
on this verv matter ? ^'Pare religion and un-
158 THE CENTUEIOI^ OF CESAEEA.
defiled before God and the Fatlier is fhis, to
visit tlie fatherless and widows in their afflic-
tion, and to keep themselves nnspotted from
the world." James.
Fourth. Here also we have a union of reality
with eminence in the true religion. " He gave
much alms to the peoj)le, and prayed to God
always.'''' IS'ow, there cannot l)e eminence in
grace without reality; but there may be a
reality where there is not eminence. But as
Christians, it is our duty to grow in grace and
in the knowledge of our Lord Jesus Christ,
addino: the excellences of relio'ion to its essen-
tials. We should have life, and have it more
abundantly. Our hearts should be enlarged.
We should seek to be filled Avith all the full-
ness of God.
It were, however, wholly to misconstrue this
portion of the Word of God, and to contradict
the teaching of all tlie apostles, if we were to
conclude that Cornelius was accepted of God
on account of his morality and alms. We can
be justified only by faith---not 1)y works. We
are saved by grace — not l)y our own merits.
THE CEIS^TUEION OF CESAREA. 159
It is, therefore, a j)alpal)le abuse of tliis liis-
tory to make it a plea for trusting in our own
righteousness — for trusting in our own morality
and culture — as if tlie liavinsc of sucli thino-s
justified a man for rejecting Christ. This did
not the centurion. He feared Grod, worshipped
him, prayed to God always, and gave alms to
the people; and just as soon as he heard of
Jesus Christ, he believed in him and was baj)-
tized, professing his full conversion to him. He
was ready to receive salvation by the Gospel,
notwithstanding his good works. He was an
honest, earnest man — humble and teachable as
a child. And in all these particulars he differs
widely from the self-righteous of our day.
They are full of cavils and technicalities — self
confident and wiser than their teachers. They
boast of their decency and refinement, their
love of the fine arts and of j^oetry, and are
good enough to be saved without Christ. Now
tlie Eoman centurion was as good a man l)y
nature, and by practice, and by self culture, to
say the least, as any of these self-righteous
Pharisees, and probably much better, and yet
IGO THE CENTUEIOIT OF CESAEEA.
lie did not think it enougli to be moral and
respectable. He did not rest satisfied with
such things. He continues to pray to God for
more light and grace, and God hears him, and
as soon as he is told what to do, he obeys. He
sends to Joppa, and when Peter arrives, says,
how we are all here before God to hear v/ords
from thee as to what we must do to be saved —
all things that God shall command thee to say
unto us. And when Peter explains to him
who Jesus is, and that it is the Divine method
of salvation that all men, Jew and Gentile,
must believe in the Son of God and confess
him with the mouth unto salvation, then Cor-
nelius and his household were obedient — be-
lieved and were baptized. The moral and
decent and res23ectable men, therefore, instead
of being justified by the centurion's case for
not believing in Christ and professing faith in
him is condemned — most strongly condemned
by him.
N'or is there ever any controversy between
good morals and the Gospel. The alms and
prayers of the centurion ^vere a memorial in
THE CEXTUEIOjST OF CESAEEA. 161
Ills behalf before God. And it is true tliat all
due houor is given to him for liis piety and
good works, heathen though he was or had
been — for he was not yet circumcised, nor up
to tliis time does he seem to have known any-
thing about believing in Jesus as the Messiah.
But surely God is not straitened for means
by which to reach the human heart. He called
Abram out of Ur of the Chaldees. And Job
in the land of Uz was a pious man. Melchize-
dek was a pious king amid heathen neighbors.
And here vre find Cornelius, a Koman officer —
a devout man and one tliat feared God. And
so in all lands and cities some are prepared to
receive the Gospel as soon as it is preached.
But it is not said that Cornelius was ac-
cepted of God for his mere morality, ^or does
it appear that he himself ever thought of de-
pending upon it. From the history the very
reverse would appear as true. His heai't was
evidently touched. He did not trust to his
alms, nor to his forms of prayer ; but was de-
vout — sincere and fervent in his worship of
God according to the best light he had. Is it
162 THE CENTUEION OF CESAEEA.
not an abuse, tlien, for any man to argue that
as Cornelius was a good man before be heard
of the Gospel, that he may be a good man who
hears it and rejects it ? This Cornelius did not
do. He was a devout man according to all
that he knew, and was ready to receive the
Gospel as soon as he heard it. The case, then,
is a very different one from that of a man who
depends upon his mere external morality in a
Christian land as a substitute for Christianity.
Cornelius was found in the way of obedience to
all known duty. Not content with his prayers
and alms, he is seeking to know and to do
more, and as soon and as far as he is instructed,
we see him acting promptly. But where is the
man among us who boasts of his fashionable
morality that does this? Cornelius is diligent
in all the forms of religion that he knew how
to use, and maintains them successfully in his
family, and then gladly embraces Jesus Christ
as his Saviour as soon as he is preached to liim.
This the man among us, who thinks himself
£»:ood enoucrh to be saved witlioufc a Saviour,
does not do. He improved the light he had,
THE CENTHRIOJN' OF CESAKEA. 1G3
and more was given unto him. His good works
show that he was under divine influence even
when he was ignorant whence it came. He
was a subject of free and sovereign grace, and
as soon as Jesus is preached to him, he accepts
of Him as a Saviour. The man, therefore,
among us who attempts to justify his neglect
of the Gospel by the case of Cornelius, only
condemns himself. And as Cornelius was not
a vain, self-righteous man, so neither was he an
antinomian. He was no fatalist. His reliction
was a working: reliction. Without knowins:
anything of Paul, or of his j^reaching or epis-
tles, he was obeying, with all his might, the
injunction given to the Pliilippians : Work out
your own salvation with fear and trembling,
for it is God that worketh in you both to will
and to do of his good pleasure.
Finally^ tliis Idstory illustrates the univer-
sality of the Gospel dispensation. We have
recently found that a Hebrew missionary (Jo-
nah) was sent from Joppa, in a way that he
did not choose, to preach to the Ninevites ; and
here we fmd Peter sent from the same place to.
164 THE CENTUEION OF CESAEEA.
open iij) tlie Idngdom of God to tlie Gentiles.
By an extraordinary vision lie is convinced tliat
tlie Ligli wall between the Jews and the Gen-
tiles was broken down.
The Jewish idea that a man was to be saved
certainly and simply becanse he was born a
Jew is no longer to prevail. It never was cor-
rect. God does not save any man because of
his birth, rank, talents or external privileges.
l^ov does God exclude any man from his favor
on account of these things.
The New Testament shows most clearly that
in the matter of salvation, there is no difference
])etween Jew and Gentile, bond and free. God
is no resjiecter of persons. He will not save a
man because he is a Jew or because he is an
Ano'lo-Saxon. Nor will he condemn him sim-
ply because he is a Chinese or a Walla- Walla
Diesrer. The whole human race lie before God
uj)on the same level — stand on the same plat-
form. None are to be saved merely on account
of external privileges — none are to be lost
simply or merely for the want of them. All
are guilty. All have come short of the glory
THE CEXTUEIOX OF CESAEEA. 165
of God. If any are saved, ifc must be owing to
God's sovereign mercy. And now it liatli
pleased liim tliat all men everywhere should
believe the Gospel, repent and be saved. " But
in every nation, he that feareth him and Vv'ork-
eth righteousness, is accepted with him." " The
sacrifices of God are a broken spirit : a broken
and a contrite heart, O God, thou wilt not
despise."
VIII.
THE CENTUEION OF CESAKEA CONTINUED.
3. — Peter''s Sermon on tlie Occasion of his Con-
version.
Then Peter opened his mouth, and said, Of a tiuth T perceive that
God is no respecter of persons: But in every nation he that fearcth
him, and worketh righteousness, is accepted with him. Tlie word
■wlncli God sent unto tlie children of Israel, prcacliing peace by Jesus
Christ : (he is Lord of all :) That word (I say), ye know, which was'
published throughout all Judea, and began from Galilee, after the
baptism which John preached ; How God anointed Jesus of Naza-
reth with the Holy Ghost and with power : who went about doing
good, and healing all that were oppressed of the devil; for God was
with him. And we are witnesses of all things which he did both in
the land of the Jews, and in Jerusalem ; whom they slew and hanged
on a tree : Ilim -God raised up the third day and showed him openly :
N^ot to all the people, but unto witnesses chosen before of God, even
to us, who did cat and drink with him after he rose from the dead.
And he commanded us to preach unto the people, and to testify that
it is he which was ordained of God to be the Judge of quick and
dead. To him give all the prophets witness, that through his name
whosoever believeth in him shall receive remission of sins.
While Peter yet spake these words, the Holy Ghost fell on all them
which heard the word. And they of the circumcision which believed
IGG
THE CEXTUEIOISr OF CESAEEA. 107
were astonislicd* as many as came witli Peter, because tliat on tlie
Gentiles also was poured out the giCt of the Holy Ghost. For they
heard them speak with tongues, and magnify God. Then answered
Peter : Can any man forbid water, that these should not be bap-
tized, which have received the Holy Ghost as well as we V And he
commanded them to be baptized in the name of the Lord. Then
prayed they him to tarry certain days. — Acts x. 34 to end of chapter.
This chapter contains an account of tlie re-
ception of Gentile converts into tlie Gospel
clmrcli without the intermediate state of Juda-
ism. The introduction to the conversion of
Cornelius (chap. ix. 31-43, and chap. xi. 1-18)
is the appendix. The whole history is one of
great interest to us. The main facts in regard
to this distinguished convert are, his country,
his profession, rank and residence, and that we
are to regard him as the representative man of
all Gentile nations; the first who was received
into the Gospel Church after the day of Pente-
cost, and without passing through the gate of
proselytism to Judaism. This interesting sub-
ject of converting grace Ave have found Avhere
we sliould not antecedently have looked for
such a history ; we have found a 2)ious heathen,
a Koman officer, who was devout, feared God,
168 THE CEXTUEIOX OY CESAPwEA.
gave alms to all the people, and praj'ed always.
We liave, therefore, found the chiirdi of the
living God in the Roman army, in the service
of a Pagan emperor. And in looking for the
means employed for producing such a result,
^Ye discover them to have been ordinary and
supernatural ; the light of nature, the strength
of the natural conscience, the force of tradition
and the direct illumination of the Spirit of
almighty grace. And for the purpose of mail-
ing known to this distinguished man the way
of salvation through Jesus Christ, we have seen
that he lias a vision, and an ano^el of God is
sent to tell him to send for Peter. Accordingly
the centurion's messengers travel some thirty-
iive or forty miles from Cesarea to Joppa, and
find Peter lodging with one Simon, a tanner,
and when he is convinced that it is his duty to
go and preach Jesus among the Gentiles, and
even to a Eoman centurion, lie lodges the mes-
sengers with him till morning, and then goes
with them to Cesarea. Olshausen concludes
Cornelius was not a proselyte to the Hebrew
religion, but was in the j)rocess of becoming
THE ce:n^tueion of cesakea. 169
one. Perhaps already so far advanced as to be
" a proselyte of tlie gate." But tlie wliole force
and meaning of tlie narrative is, we think, lost,
if Cornelius liad embraced Judaism. The de-
scription given of him is not that of a proselyte,
" in any technical or formal, sense, but of a Gen-
tile whom divine grace had prepared for the im-
mediate reception of the Gospel, without pass-
ing through the intermediate state of Judaism,
although long familiar with it, and indebted
to it for such knowledge of the word of God
as he possessed." Prof, J, A. Alexander in loco.
But in calling Cornelius a pious heathen we are
not to be understood to mean that he was
saved without or independent of Jesus Christ.
Peter declares that his case proved that who-
ever in every nation feareth God and worketh
lighteousness, is accepted of him. Righteous-
ness toward our fellow-men, and piety toward
God, must indeed go together. But no man is
justified in the sight of God, except through
the mediation of Jesus Christ. But infants,
idiots, and such heathen as Cornelius, who have
no knowledge of the Son of God, or are inca-
8
170 THE CENTUEION OF CESAEEA.
pable of knowing wlio lie is, may nevertheless
receive tlie grace of God for liis sake and be
saved tlirougli him. It is the opinion of Owen,
one of the ablest Biblical interpreters and one
of our greatest theologians, that the angels w ho
have kept their first estate, are confirmed in
glory by the death of Christ. It is on this
ground that w^e hope for the salvation of Socra-
tes. For while no one is saved independent of
Christ, such as we have named may be saved
by him without being aware of it till their sal-
vation is completed. The character and pre-
vious history of Cornelius are therefore worthy
of special attention. He was a devout many
pious not merely in a heathen sense, hvii feared
God., the one only living and true God.^ He
was diligent in keeping the seven precepts of
Noah, which forbade idolatry, profanity, incest,
murder, dishonesty, the eating of blood or of
anything strangled, and required all murderers
to be put to death. This was the sum of the
religion of the whole world, until heathenism
began to prevail, and then it Avas still the reli-
gion of the Patriarchs, fi'om Abraham to Moses.
THE CEXTUEIOjN- of CESAEEA. 171
It is plain from tlie Old Testament that some
recognition of Jehovah as tlie Grocl of tlie He-
brews, was common amono; tlie suiToundino;
nations, and not inconsistent witli tlieir poly-
theism ; but Cornelius had abandoned all false
gods and all idolatry, and feared the true God
in opposition to the gods of heathendom. And
lie taught all his family to do the same. He
feared God loith all his house. His relio:ion
was also a living reality, for he abounded in
charities, and vras punctual and spiritual in his
prayers, asking wisdom from God to direct liim
in all thino;s. IN'ow in the brinofino; of this
man into the Church, we see how divine provi-
dence arranges the means and provides the
agents for j)erforming the parts assigned to
them. The providential means used for the
centurion's conversion were twofold, a vision
to himself and a trance and a vision to Peter.
The first was to assure Cornelius that God had
a perfect knowledge of his ways, and designed
to show him mercy, and direct him what to do
in order that he might be saved. The otJier
vision to Peter was intended to convince him
1'72 THE CEISTTUEIOIS' OF CESAEEA.
that tlie old liigli j)artition wall between Jews
and Gentiles was now broken down, and that
he should, therefore, meet the advances of Cor-
nelius thouo:h he was a Roman centurion. It
was a kind providence that took Peter to
Joppa and detained him there, for JojDpa was
easy of access from Cesarea. And it was a gra-
cious providence that overruled the time and
the manner of the two visions, and that fur-
nished Cornelius suitable men for his message
to Joppa, The divine regard for Cornelius is
seen moreover in sending an angel to him, and
in giving Peter so instructive and im2:)ressive a
vision. The sheet let down to him, the Tlione^
was emblematical of the extending of the Gos-
pel to all men, and its four corners knit to-
gether aptly typical of the four quarters of the
globe, south, east, north and west, that are
embraced in the Gospel offer. As there was
an earnest and worthy purpose in the vision to
Cornelius — the vision was not designed to
amuse, frighten, or astonish him, but to direct
hi^ how to proceed in order that he might
know his whole duty — so also, the details of
THE CENTUEION OF CESAEEA. 173
Peter's vision, and tlie story of tlie men from
Joppa, and tlieir account of God's manifestation
to tlieir master, and tJie enlightening of his
mind at the time by the Spirit of God, all con-
curred in preparing the Eoman officer to meet
Peter, and in j^reparing Peter also to meet him.
A blessed Providence was working all the time
with both of them, though at first they knew
it not. How wonderful and gracious was the
chain of providence that brought about the
conversion of Cornelius ! A vision to him and
a trance upon Peter — wonderful coincidences
preparing the way for the opening of the door
of Christ's kingdom to the Gentiles ! But God
is no less wonderful and gracious now than he
was then. He is full of compassion. He knows
all our trials and temptations. He knoweth
our frame and remembereth that we are but
dust. How often do we overrate ourselves and
underrate God's mercies ! His grace is always
sufficient. To him be all the glory.
Beghming at Galilee. Verse 37. Please read
here from verse 34 to the end of the chapter.
Accordino* to Peter and the evano-elists, the
174 THE CENTUEIOK OF CESAEEA.
order of our Lord's manifestations is on this
wise: He was baj)tizec) by John, then goes
into the desert and remains forty days, then
returns to John the Baptist, who was at Betha-
ny or Bethabara, and made disciples of An-
drew, Bartholomew, Peter and Philip, and went
afterward .to Capernaum and ^vrought many
miracles in Galilee. These thino^s had been a
long time so notorious, that Peter presumes
Cornelius to be acquainted with them.
First. Peter's sermok before the centurion
shows that he was now able to understand the
natural theology of human races. God is no
respecter of persons — that is, the divine favor
is not, as we have heretofore taught, confined
to Israelites — a pious Gentile, a man who,
like Cornelius, fears Godj is accepted in his
sight, though he has not the same form of wor-
ship that the Jews have, or that we Christians
have. A wicked man is not accepted of God
on account of his external advantaires. His
race and wealth and honors and forms of reli-
gion may all be proper in their place, but it is
not for them that he is to be saved. The di-
THE CENTUEION OF CESAREA. 175
vine rule is to regard tlie lieart and proceed
witli men according to tlieir true and real char-
acter. It was a fatal mistake, therefore, for his
countrymen to think that they could not be
lost, however wicked they might be, because
they were descended from Abraham ; and that
a Gentile could not be saved, however pious
his manner of life might be, simply because he
was born a Gentile. God is a sovereign, and
bestows his gifts, both temporal and spiritual,
after his own will and pleasure. Peter's vision
presented in the same sheet, animals clean and
unclean ; that is, such as were used in Hebrew
sacrifices and such as were forbidden according
to the ceremonial law. And the force of this
vision is also the more clearly apprehended
when we remember that unclean animals were
considered by the Jews as an image of the Gen-
tiles. In the book of the Kevelation of St.
John, four beasts and four and twenty eldei^s
are supposed to represent the Gentile and Jew-
ish churches ; that is, converts from among the
heathen and the Jews. "What God hath
cleansed that call not thou common or unclean.''
1T6 THE CENTUKION OF OESAREA.
Bengel lias very happily remarked here that it
is not an indifferentism of religions, but an
indifferency ; that is, an impartiality as to the
acceptance of nations that is spoken of. Peter
does not say as some of the savans of our day
do, that all religions are equally good, but that
Avhoever is truly and practically pious in every
nation God accepts without any partiality as
to their nationality. "Peter is not here deny-
ing a sovereign and discriminating choice, but
one founded on mere national distinctions. I
tiow at length understand that although God
bestows his favors as he will, he does not mean
to limit them hereafter as of old to any one
race of people." Alexander. But was not this
always' true? Most certainly. It was true
from the beginning, that whoever feared God
and wrouglit righteousness was accepted of
hiui. But Peter had not perceived it before ;
the fault, however, was his own. And his dis-
covery of the truth now was not owing to his
superior learning or intellectual investigation,
but to God's revelations to him. Nor does his
discovery add anything to the store of sover-
THJD CENTUEION OF CESAREA. 1^7
eign grace. It is not more true in itself now
than before; but Lis eyes are opened to see
what he had not been able to see. Even as
long ago as Cain's transgression, w^e find the Al-
mighty remonstrating with him as to his un-
reasonable views of sin and his moral condi-
tion." " If thou doest well, shalt thou not be
accepted? If not well, sin and its punishment
lieth at thy door." Gen. iv. 7. It had always
been true that the kino^dom of God consisted
not in meat and drink, but in righteousness,
joy and peace in the Holy Ghost. But now
this truth is made more manifest. IN^ow it is
clearly seen that in Christ Jesus there is neither
circumcision nor uncircumcision, but a new
heart — a new creature. The inquiry at the
last day will not be as to what nation or coun-
try we belonged to, nor whether we were bap-
tized in this church or in some other, but how
have ^sf^felt and acted toward God and our fel-
low men ? Our conduct, our faitli and actions
toward God and man will be the subjects ex-
amined into at the judgment of Almiglit}^ God.
Second. Peter's sermon was an orio-inal dis
178 TK3 CENTUEION OF CESAEEA.
course — a new one. It contained trutlis as old
as the creation, but not known to him or to his
hearers before. Columbus' discovery of Ame-
rica did not create the continent, nor did New-
ton's discoveries in astronomy call the heavenly
bodies into existence. Peter's preaching was
new only in the sense of apprehending and ex-
plaining the will of God, which on these points
he had not before understood. And hence we
find his discourse historical, doctrinal, exposi-
tory, and practical. And although the Gen-
tiles who lived among or near the Jews were
more or less acquainted with their religion,
and the histories of their Scriptures, they knew
little if anything at all about the character, life,
doctrines, preaching and precepts or true claims
of Jesus as the Messiah, until they were especial-
ly instructed by the preaching of the apostles.
lliat word^ ye IcnoiVj loliicli was j[)uhlished
throiiglioiit all the land of Judea — that is, a re-
port of Jesus and his miracles was well known
among the people, even from tlie baptism and
preaching of John. "And of all that I now
preach, we are witnesses of all things which he
THE CENTURION OF CESAEEA. 179
did botli in tlie land of tlie Jews and in Jeru-
salem, whom tliey slew and hanged on a tree ;
Him God raised up the third day, and shewed
him openly not to all the people, but unto wit-
nesses chosen before of God." Verses 39-41.
JVot to all the ])eo2)le. Why not ? 1. Be-
cause the times were sadly out of joint ; suspi-
cious and seditious. It would have caused
commotion or trouble. Some would have cried
this is he, and others have said, it is like him ;
and others would have denied everything in
the confusion, and the validity of the testimony
w^ould have been weakened rather than estab-
lished. 2. The risrht kind of witnesses were
chosen of God, namely : such as knew him in-
timately, had known him a long time, and who
had nothing to gain by giving false testimony.
It was impossible for them to have been mis-
taken, or to find a reasonable motive for them
to deceive others, nor was their testimony ever
successfully imj^eached. They were his daily
companions for more than three years before
the crucifixion, and '' they did eat and drink
with liim after he rose from the dead." They
180 THE CENTrKIOK OF CESAEEA.
saw the prints of tlie nails and the gash of the
spear, and they saw him ascend into heaven,
and if this was not trnej why did not theii
enemies produce his body 1 3. The testimony
of these eye witnesses was as perfect as if Jesus
had been shown to great multitudes. In the
law the testimony of two or three is as good as
a hundred. One demonstration in mathematics
is as conclusive as a thousand. The witnesses
were sufficient in number. They were in every
way competent. Their knowledge was accu-
rate. Their veracity above reasonable suspi-
cion. Their motives absolutely unquestion-
able. And then/ after all, our conviction of
the truth of all these things must rest upon tes-
timony. Before our conversion, we have no
proof of the truth of religion but upon testi-
mony. We do not know anything that we
have not seen or felt ourselves, except from the
testimony of others. We are shut up to the
necessity of receiving con^dction by faith. So-
ciety is a rope of sand without a reliance upon
human testimony. We cannot live without it.
And even if Jesus had been shown with al]
THE CENTURIOjS- OF CESAREA. 181
the marks of liis crucifixion palpal)] e to every
man, woman, and cliild in tlie Hebrew nation,
still ice must believe upon testimony, and tlie
testimony we have is as strong as human wit-
nesses can make it. Peter, therefore, shows
that the resurrection of Jesus was a proof of
his Messiahship, and appeals to it as a fact then
publicly known, at least to a sufficient number
of the most competent witnesses — witnesses
chosen before of God to bear this testimony,
and in order that they might do so understand-
ingly, they were intimately acquainted with
him before his death, and they were with him
repeatedly and in a great many different places,
and at many different times after his resurrec-
tion ; and had a great deal of free conversation
with him, "who did eat- and drink with him
after he rose from the dead." It was impossi-
ble for them to be deceived. Nor was there
any motive for them to deceive others.
Third. T[\q forty -tliirdY&c^Q is the conclusion
of Peter's sermon. " To Him give all the pro-
phets witness, that through his name, whosoever
believeth in him, shall receive remission of sins.''
182 THE CENTURION OF CESAREA.
As if tlie preacher had said, Our testimony is
indeed that of honest, competent witnesses, and
about things that have recently taken place,
and concerning which if we have not told the
truth, we can soon be exposed ; but our testi-
mony is also confirmed by all the prophets, and
they all come to the same conclusion, namely :
that whosoever believeth in Jesus of Nazareth
shall receive remission of sins, for their testi-
mony proves him to be the ano-inted of God,
the long-promised Messiah. Like the prophets
and apostles, ministers of the Grospel then are
to preach to the people concerning Christ.
They are his ambassadors, and should them-
selves be witnesses of his power to save. The
subject matter of their preaching is the remis-
sion of sins through faith in his name. That
is, that the foro:iveness of sin is to be obtained
for his sake; that therefore all men are sinners;
that there is need for the atonement ; that it is
a faithful saying and worthy of all acceptation
that Jesus Christ came into the world to save
sinners, even the chief of sinners ; and that the
great need of all men is the remission of their
THE CENTURION OF CESAEEA. 183
sins, and holiness, without wliicli tliey cannot
see God in peace. By tlie taking away — " the
remission of sins " — Peter means the removing;
of their guilt, power, nature and consequences.
And this implies their pardon and our accept-
ance with God, reconciliation to Him, sanctifi-
cation and comj)lete redemption — a glorious
SALVATION. The apostle is careful to speak of
the dignity of our Lord. He is the anointed
of God ; and yet He was diligent in his work,
and died for our redemption. He also reminds
Cornelius that the Gospel which he was then
hearing was venerable for its antiquity. It
has always been the true and only religion for
man as a sinner.
Fourth. The results of Peter's sermon.
" The Holy Ghost fell on them which heard
the word." Verse 44, etc.
1. The Holy Ghost, then, is something dis-
tinct and separate from the Word ; and yet is
necessary to make the Word effectual, even
wdien spoken by an inspired man. The Spirit
of inspiration ^vas on Peter, and while ])y it lie
-was speaking, the Spirit fell on his hearers.
184: THE CEXTURION OF CESAEEA.
Tlius was God honored in liis Word, and thus
did he honor the word and ministry of his ser-
vant.
2. The Holy Ghost fell uj^on these Gentiles
hefore they w^ere baptized. So Abraham was
justified by faith before he was circumcised.
Cornelius and his friends, while yet Peter is
preaching, received the Holy Ghost. This
proves that baptismal regeneration is not ac-
cording to the Gospel. Here was the baptism
of the Holy Ghost before and wholly inde-
pendent of the bajDtism with water that was
subsequently administered. And here also we
have a plain proof that God is not confined to
any set of ordinances or external signs. The
Holy Ghost was no resj^ecter of modes. The
flesh profiteth nothing. It is the Spirit that
(juickeneth.
3. But it certainly is an error to say that;
water baptism is unnecessary to those who
have received the baptism of the Holy Spirit,
for the very reason given for baptizing them
with water is that tliey have been baptized
with the Spirit. It is enough for us to know
THE CENTURIOl^ OF CESAREA. 185
that baptism with water is a sacrament ap-
pointed by our Lord, and that he has made
it the door of admission into his visible church,
and a seal of the new covenant. Though the
Holy One of Israel is not limited in his works,
nor fettered 1)y ordinances as we are, yet we
liave no right to presume on his grace in any
other than in his own appointed ways. We
are not to trust in, nor neglect the ordinances
of religion. They are divinely appointed chan-
nels of grace and salvation, and yet they do
not of themselves convey essential grace ; but
lead to Christ w^ho is all in all.
4. Can any man fori Id tv at er ? clearly means
— who can forbid that water should be brouofht
in ? There is no probability — scarcely, indeed,
is it possible — that there was any immersion in
this case. There was no preparation for such
a mode of baptism. The Roman centurion was
not likely to have had a baptistery or baptismal
font in his quarters. And if he had, and they
were going to it, then the form of the expres-
sion would have been : Who can forbid us to
go to tlte water ? The distinction between ap-
186 THE CENTURION OF CESAEEA.
plying the subject for baptism to tlie water, or
applying tlie water to tlie subject, is important,
for it goes very far toward settling tlie question
about tlie mode of baptism. And surely in
this case the water was applied to Cornelius,
and not Cornelius to the water, and it was
applied by pouring or sjDrinkling. " Can any
man forbid water" — however rio-id a Jew he
may be — however ceremonious he may be —
can he forbid water, " that these should not be
baptized, who have received the Holy Ghost
as well as we?" The argument is perfectly
conclusive. " What God hath cleansed, that
call not thou common or unclean." Shall we
deny the sign to those who have received from
God himself the thino; sio-nified? Are not
those on whom God has bestoAved the irrace of
the covenant plainly entitled to the seals of
that covenant ? Surely we should follow God's
example, and receive those into our communion
whom he hath taken into fellowship) with hini^
self by giving them his Holy Spirit. Tliis rule,
applied to the subjects and mode of baptism,
and also to the order of ministers and mode of
THE CENTUEION OF CESAEEA. 187
tlieir consecration and worsliip, would teacli us
to be liberal in our views, and to love all wlio
love our Lord Jesus Christ.
A few points of Christian character and of
practical divinity developed in this history of
the conversion of Cornelius, are worthy of a
distinct notification.
1. One cannot but observe it as a remark-
able feature in aj^ostolic character, that they
were self-denying and disinterested in their la-
bors. After the day of Pentecost, where and
when do we find them wantino; in courao-e, or
showing any symptoms of selfishness ? ISTever
do we find them j)ursuing schemes of ambition
or of worldly glory. They were so intent on
the glory of their Master and the salvation of
the souls of men that they were themselves con-
tent to be forgotten and overlooked. They
were never tired of^ though sometimes weary
in^ the service of God.
2. In tlie conversion of a Itoman centurion
toe have a proof of the poiver of the Gospel as
well as of its expansive ness.
It is strange the apostles should have con
188 THE CEISTTUEION OF CESAEEA.
ceivecl tliat tlie command to go and disciple all
nations, meant only sucli nations or persons as
Lad embraced tlie Jewish religion; yet tliis
was their idea at first, and it was very difficult
to remove it. But liere we have an illustration
of God's method of honoring his word, the
preaching of which he has made the great in-
strument or means of converting and saving
men. Cornelius was not taught what to do by
any direct illumination. Nor w^as the angel
employed himself to preach the Gos2:)el, but to
introduce the preacher — to tell Cornelius where
to find Peter, who should tell him what to do.
This is a striking demonstration that it is God's
will for every one to do just what he is told to
do, and also of the worth of combining human
and divine agency in the work of Christian-
izing the world. It was as easy for the angel
to have told Cornelius of Jesus as to tell him
of Peter. But the divine purpose was to bring
Peter and Cornelius together — a Jew and a
Gentile. The supernatural messages to Peter
all carried their great lesson with them, until
Peter is prepared to go to a Gentile. God thus
THE CEXTUEIOX OF CESAPwEA. 189
opened up Peter's lieart to the largeness and
liberality of the Gospel economy, and prepared
the way for liini to meet Cornelius, and in the
meantime Cornelius lia-s been so prepared, that
when he is brought into personal contact with
Peter, his mind is opened, and Peter's words
convey life and power to him. We must not
forget that this was done by divine aid. The
Iloly Ghost fell on them. God hath joined
means and ends together. God's works of
creation and providence, and also of grace, are
all wonderful. They all display his wisdom,
power and goodness. In Cornelius we see that
the Holy One of Israel is not limited. Oracles
are good, but no mere outward rites of religion
are sufficient. They are helps. They are not
to be despised or treated Avith neglect, neither
are we to trust in them. To what extent God
operates on the minds of individual heathens
we know not. A remarkable case is recorded
of the Flathead Indians of the Rocky Moun-
tains, Avho sent a deputation of four to St.
Louis, in the days of General Clarke, to know
what was taught in the white man's Bil^le.
190 THE CETfTURIOTf OF CESAEEA.
Speaking witli reverence, it was just as easy
for God to liave commanded tlie ang-el to tell
Cornelius what to do, as to tell liim to instruct
Cornelius to send to Joppa for Peter. This
would have saved the centurion a great deal of
trouble and time ; but this was not Grod's me-
thod. The means appointed for the conversion
of the world must be honored. The treasure is
indeed in earthen vessels, that the excellency of
the power may be of God and not of man. It
hath pleased God by the foolishness of preach-
ing to save them that believe. Angels may be
employed in carrying messages of love to other
worlds. They have summoned some of our
own race in past ages, to listen to the glad tid-
ings of free grace ; but God's great i3lan is to
convert men chiefly by the preaching of the Gos-
j)el by men of like 2^ccS'Sio?i-s with ourselves —
men who are converted and called to the work
by the Holy Spirit ; who can sympathize with
us, and tell us from their own experience what
religion is, and how sinners are to be saved.
3. In admiring; the excellent character of Cor-
nelius, we must be careful to distinguish be-
THE CENTURIOI^ OF CESAEEA. 101
tween the 2^ ^'ociirln^j cause of Lis salvation and
the evidences of Lis piety. And we must avoid,
as we liave already said in tLe former discourses,
confounding Lis rnoralify witL \ii^ piety ^ or sub-
stituting Lis alms and j^rayers for Lis accept-
ance of CLrist wLen j)reacLed to Lim. Exem-
plary and amiable and sincere in Lis bearing as
a man and as a soldier, Lis moralitv led liim to
CLrist. He did not tLink of depending on it
and of rejecting CLrist because of it. His piety
was personal, earnest, social and domestic, as if
Le Lad been trained in tLe camp of tLat Leroic
general and prince, wLo said most firmly be-
fore an assembled nation : '' As for me," even
if you are faitLless, " as for me and my Louse,
we will serve tLe Lord." His i)iety and works
of rigLteousness were accepted of Cod, but did
not merit divine grace. And so now we must
use tLe means of grace, for altLougL tliey do
not of themselves save, yet we Lave no rigLt to
expect salvation witLout tLem.
4. Nor sliould we forget to observe tLe mo-
ral courage of tliis Eoman. He breaks away
first from tLe idols Le was tauglit to A^orsLip
192 THE cejN^tueioin' of cesarea.
in liis yoiitli, and adopts the religion of NoaL ;
and tlien lie lias tlie courage to own his change
of religion and to practise its holy precepts.
And this he does in the face, firstj of the con-
tempt which all the world had for the Jews,
and es^Decially for their religion ; and secondly^
in opposition to the law of the empire that for-
bade any Koman citizen to receive any strange
or new relie^ion. But he was obedient to the
heavenly vision and sent for Peter, and then
heard his preaching, and submitted to the
terms of admission into the Christian Church.
He w^as baptized and became a member of
Christ's Church. And it may be, that it is
just here many of my hearers fail. They have
knowledge. It may be they are even learned ;
but they have not moral courage. "Without
some touch of the heroic sj^irit, there is not
much that is great or good effected in our
world. In every department of life, it seems
to us the great want of our times is courage
to do right. In business, there are so many
temptations to do wrong, that a man of a
weak and vacillating temj^er is almost sui*e
THE CENTUEION OF CESAEEA. 193
to go astray. And in the religious enterprises
of the day, there is need not only of an
honest heart, but of a courage and a resolu-
tion that will shrink from no toil or weari-
ness. That religion is very weak that evapo-
rates in sentiment. Knowledge is worth but
little that is not applied. Elegant culture is a
gracefid ornament, but it does not renew the
heart. It is but as the pale moonbeams on the
waves, that can do nothing to stop their rag-
ing. W licit our age wants is moral courage —
high moral integrity united to a heart that
knows no fear. And yet it is much more rare
to find a man of true moral courao-e than to
find one of amiable qualities, or of learning.
There are thousands who
'* See the good, and approve it too,
Abhor the wrong, and yet the wrong pursue,"
because they have not firmness of principle,
nor com'age to make a stand against the WTong.
We find Josej)h of Arimathea, an honorable
counsellor, a disciple of Jesus, " but secretly, for
fear of the Jews," He was convinced that
194 THE CENTUEION OF CESAEEA.
Jesus was tlie Messiah, and designed, when he
should be acknowledged and proclaimed as
such, to profess his faith in him ; but God gave
him grace to declare his faith sooner than he
desi finned. This honorable man was a sincere
but a timid and faint-hearted disciple, and it is
indeed wonderful to see how heroic he became
in pi'ofessing his attachment to a dead Christ,
whom living he had not had courage to own.
But it is substantially so now. Some men in-
dulge the hope that they are Christians, or that
God has been gracious to their souls, and yet
delay to make an oj>en profession of their faith.
They in effect conceal their love for God and
their hope of salvation through fear of their
fellow men. This is a dangerous practice. It
is contrary to the plainest commands of God
our Saviour. He has again and again told us,
we must take up the cross and follow him. If
we are ashamed of him before men, he will be
ashamed of us before his Father and his holy
angels. If we do' really love him, we will keep
his commandments. If we have satisfactory
evidence that Jesus is Christ, we have no right
THE CEl^TURION OF CESAEEA. 195
to witlihold our testimony in liis behalf. We
have no risrht to hide our li2:ht under a
bushel ; nor is it to be expected that we
shall have any comfort in religion, if we do
not obey all the known commandments of
God. What, then, are the commandments of
God which are unto life? We must at least
have faith in him and in his word, and to
discern the Lord's body, before we are pre-
pared to take the holy sacrament. Christ
says : " Do this in remembrance of me." But
you say: How can I know whether or not I
am prepared to obey this command ? We an-
swer by asking you, Do you believe in your
heart that Jesus Christ is the Son of God
and the Saviour of sinners, as he is set forth
in the Gospel ? Do you feel that you are a
sinner in the sight of God, and that you must
trust in Christ or perish in your sins? And
are you resolved, by the help of God, that you
will forsake all known sins and try to live a
Christian life ? As far as you know yourself,
do you accept of Jesus Christ as the only Sa-
196 THE CEiq^TUEIO]^ OF CESAKEA.
viour, and put all your trust in liim ? Then
we say, Come and welcome. Come to the
Lord's supper, and whosoever cometh unto
Him shall be saved.
IX.
Paul's voyage and shipwreck.
And when it was determined that we should
sail into Italy, they delivered Paul, and certain
other prisoners, unto one named Julius, a cen-
turion of Augustus' band. And, entering
into a ship of Adramyttium, we launched,
meaning to sail by the coast of Asia ; one Aris-
tarchus, a Macedonian of Thessalonica, being
with us. And the next day we touched at
Sidon. And Julius courteously entreated Paul,
and gave him liberty to go unto his friends
to refresh himself And when we had launched
from thence, we sailed under Cyj^rus, because
the winds were contrary. And when we had
sailed over the sea of Cilicia and Pamphilia,
we came to Myra, a city of Lycia. And there
the centurion found a ship of Alexandria sail-
ing into Italy ; and he put us therein. And
when we had sailed slowly many days, and
197
198 Paul's voyage and shipweeck.
scarce were come over against Cnidus, the wind
not suffering us, we sailed under Crete, over
against Salmone ; and, hardly passing it, came
unto a ]3lace which is called The Fair Havens ;
nigh whereunto was the city of Lasea.
Now when much time was spent, and when
sailing was now dangerous, because the fast
was now already past, Paul admonished them,
and said unto them, Sirs, I perceive that this
voyage will be with hurt and much damage,
not only of the lading and ship, but also of our
lives. Nevertheless the centurion believed the
master and the owner of the ship, more than
those things which were spoken by Paul. And
because the haven was not commodious to win-
ter in, the more part advised to depart thence
also, if by any means they might attain to Phe-
nice, and there to winter; which is a haven
of Crete, and lieth toward the southwest and
northwest. And when the south wind blew
softly, supposing that they had obtained their
purpose, loosing thence, they sailed close by
Crete. But not lonsr after there arose aficainst
it a tempestuous wind, called Euroclydon,
Paul's voyage akd shipwreck. 199
And wlien tlie sliip was caught, and could not
bear up into the wind, we let her drive. And
iTinning under a certain island which is called
Clauda, ^Ye had much work to come by the
boat: which when they had taken up, they
used helps, undergirding the ship; and, fear
ing lest they should fall into the quicksands,
strake sail, and so were driven. And we
being exceedingly tossed with a tempest, the
next day they lightened the ship; and the
third day we cast out with our own hands the
tackling of the ship. And when neither sun
nor stars in many days appeared, and no small
tempest lay on us, all hope that we should
be saved was then taken away.
But after long abstinence, Paul stood forth
in the midst of them, and said. Sirs, ye should
have hearkened unto me, and not have loosed
from Crete, and to have gained this harm and
loss. And now I exhort you to be of good
cheer : for there shall be no loss of any man's
life among you, but of the ship. For there
stood by me this night the angel of God, whose
I am^ and whom I serve, saying. Fear not, Paul :
200 Paul's voyage aistd shipwreck.
thou must be brought before Cesar: and, lo,
God liatli given thee all them that sail with
thee. Wherefore, sirs, be of good cheer: for I
believe God, that it shall be even as it was told
me. Howbeit we must be cast upon a certain
island. But when the fourteenth night was
come, as we were driven u^ and down in Adria,
about midnight the shipmen deemed that they
drew near to some country ; and sounded, and
found it twenty fathoms : and when they had
gone a little further, they sounded again, and
found it fifteen fathoms. Then fearing lest they
should have fallen upon rocks, they cast four
anchors out of the stern, and wished for the
day. And as the shipmen were about to flee
out of the ship, when they had let down the
boat into the sea, under color as thoug-h thev
would have cast anchors out of the fore ship,
Paul said to the centurion and the soldiers,
Except these abide in the ship, ye cannot be
saved. Then the soldiers cut off the ropes of
the boat, and let her fall off. And while the
day was coming on, Paul besought them all to
take meat, saying. This day is the fourteenth
Paul's voyage aot) shipweeck. 201
day that ye liave tarried and continued fasting,
having taken nothing. Wherefore I j^ray you
to take some meat : for this is for your health :
for there shall not a hair fall from the head
of any of you. And when he had thus spoken,
he took bread, and gave thanks to Grod in
presence of them all : and when he had broken
it, he began to eat. Then were they all of
good cheer, and they also took some meat.
And we were in all in the ship two hundred
threescore and sixteen souls. And when they
had eaten enough, they lightened the ship, and
cast out the wheat into the sea. And when it
was day, they knew not the land: but they
discovered a certain creek with a shore, into
the which they were minded, if it were possi-
ble, to thrust in the ship. And when they had
taken u-p the anchors, they committed tliem-
selves unto the sea, and loosed the rudder
bands, and hoisted up the mainsail to the wind,
and made toward shore. And falling into a
place where two seas met, they ran the ship
aground ; and the forepart stuck fast, and re-
mained unmovable, but the hinder part was
202 Paul's voyage and shtpweeck.
broken with the violence of the waves. And
the soldiers' counsel was to kill the prisoners,
lest any of them should swim out, and escape.
But the centurion, Avilling to save Paul, kept
them from their purpose ; and commanded that
they which could swim should cast themselves
first into the sea, and get to land : and the rest,
some on boards, and some on broken pieces of
the ship. And so it came to pass, that they
escaped all safe to land.
And when they were escaped, then they
knew that the island was called Melita. And
the barbarous j^eople showed us no little kind-
ness: for they kindled a fire, and received us
every one, because of the present rain, and be-
cause of the cold. And when Paul had gath-
ered a bundle of sticks, and laid them on the
fire, there came a viper out of the heat and
fastened on his hand. And when the barba-
rians saw the venomous beast hang on his
hand, they said among themselves, No doubt
this man is a murderer, whom, though he hatli
escaped the sea, yet vengeance suifereth not to
live. And he shook off the beast into the fire,
PAULS VOYAGE AND SHIPWEECK. 203
and felt no liarm. Howbeit they looked when
lie should have swollen, or fallen down dead
suddenly: but after they had looked a great
while,* and saw no harm come to him, they
chanired their minds, and said that he was a
god.
In the same quarters were possessions of the
chief man of the island, whose name was Pub-
lius; who received us, and lodged us three
days courteously. And it came to pass, that
the father of Publius lay sick of a fever and of
a bloody flux : to whom Paul entered in, and
prayed, and laid his hands on him, and healed
him. So when this was done, others also, which
had diseases in the island, came, and were
healed : who also honored us with many hon-
ors ; and when we departed, they laded us
with such things as were necessary. And after
three months we departed in a ship of Alex-
andria, which had wintered in the isle, whose
sign was Castor and Pollux. And landing at
Syracuse, we tarried there three days. And
from thence we fetched a compass, and came to
E-hegium: and after one day the south wind
204 Paul's voyage and shipweeck.
blew, and we came the next day to Piiteoli :
where we found brethren, and were desh'ed to
tarry with them seven days : and so we went
toward Rome. And from thence, w^hen the
brethren heard of us, they came to meet us as
far as Appii-forum, and The Three Taverns :
whom when Paul saAV, he thanked God, and
took courage. And when we came to Rome,
the centurion delivered the prisoners to the
captain of the guard : but Paul was suffered to
dwell by himself with a soldier that kept him.
And it came to pass, that after three days Paul
called the chief of the Jews together : and when
they were come together, he said unto them,
Men and brethren, though I have committed
nothing against the people, or customs of our
fathers, yet was I delivered prisoner from Jeru-
salem into the hands of the Romans. Who,
when they had examined me, would have let
me go, because there was no cause of death in
me. But wlien the Jews spake against it, I
was constrained to appeal unto Caesar; not
that I had aught to accuse my nation of. For
this cause therefore have I called for you, to
PAULS VOYAGE AND SHEPWEECK. 205
see yoiij and to speak with you : because that
for the hope of Israel I am bound with this
chain. And they said unto him, We neither
received letters out of Judea concerning thee,
neither any of the brethren that came showed
or spake any harm of thee. But we desire to
hear of thee what thou thinkest: for as con-
cerning this sect, we know that everywhere it
is spoken against. And when they had ap-
pointed him a day, there came many to him
into his lodging ; to whom he expounded and
testified the kingdom of God, persuading them
concerning Jesus, both out of the law of Moses,
and out of the prophets, from morning till
evenino'. And some believed the thino^s which
were spoken, and some believed not. And
when they agreed not among themselves, they
departed, after that Paul had spoken one word.
Well spake the Holy Ghost by Esaias the
2^roj)het unto our fathers, saying. Go unto this
people, and say. Hearing ye shall hear, and
shall not understand; and seeing ye shall see,
and not perceive : for the heai't of this people
is waxed gross, and their ears arc dull of jiear
206 Paul's voyage and shipweeck.
ing, and their eyes liave they closed ; lest tliey
should see with their eyes, and hear with their
ears, and understand with their heart, and
should be converted, and I should heal them.
Be it known therefore unto you, that the
salvation of God is sent unto the Gentiles, and
that they will hear it. And when he had said
these words, the Jews departed, and had great
reasoning among themselves. And Paul dwelt
two whole years in his own hired house, and
received all that came in unto him, preaching
the kingdom of God, and teaching those things
which concern the Lord Jesus Christ, with all
confidence, no man forbidding him. Acts xxvii.
a?icl xxviii.
X.
JULIUS, THE CENTUEIOI^ OF PAUL's VOYAGE TO
EOME.
The island of PauVs sliipwreck tvas called
Melita, wliicli we have no doubt is the Malta
of our times. Ahnost all the local traditions
of Malta, about Paul and the incidents or cir-
cumstances of the voyage, and of the wrecking
of the vessel as given in the Acts, are aj^proved
of by Dr. Kitto, Mr. Smith, of Jordan-Hill, and
by other recent and able writers.* So well
* A knowledge of the ships and navigation of the ancients, and of
tlie form and structure of Greek and Roman vessels, and of the way
in which they were worked, and of the trade and travel carried on in
the apostle's day between Alexandria and Europe, removes many of
the difficulties that at first seem to rise up in the minds of inqiiiring
students as they read the history of Paul's voyage to Rome. In the
great and scholarly works of the late Admiral Sir Charles Penrose,
and also of James Smith, Esq., and of Conybearc and Ilowson, this
whole subject has been ably treated. The eye of a sailor and the
l)eu of the scholar have been so united in these works for the eluci-
dation of the voyage and wrecking of the apostle, that but little more
can be desired.
207
208 JULIUS THE CEXTUEION.
satisfied are we of this, that we consider it time
lost to refute the opinion that the island of the
shipwreck was Venice or Meleda in Dalmatia.
The Malta of our day was the Melita of the
Acts. ISTor is there any difficulty about Adria^
for the Adriatic sea, according to ancient usage,
means all the Mediterranean between Greece
on the one side and Italy and Sicily on the
other. It was sometimes called the Gulf of
Adria.
And ivlien it ivas determined — decided upon
by Festus the Roman governor. This does not
mean, however, that any violence was done
either to the free-agency of the apostle or of the
Koman governor. It Vv^as God's purpose that
Paul should stand before Caesar in Eome ; and
for the fulfilling of that purj^ose, the apostle
himself is left free to make his appeal to the
emperor, and the authorities acting according
to their own judgment and pleasure determined
to send him. We probably means Paul, Timo-
thy, Aristarchus, and Luke the writer, as well
as other prisoners. Paul's companions were
not sent as criminals or prisoners, but went as
JULIUS THE CENTURION. 209
his friends and fellow laborers wlio felt a deep
sympatliy for him, and thus desired to show
their love for the cause in which he was labor-
ing and for which he suffered so much. This
Aristarchus is j)robably the same who is
mentioned Col. iv. 10, and if so, for some cause
or otherj he was also made at a subsequent
time the apostle's fellow-prisoner. The cen-
turion of Capernaum, and the centurion in
command at the crucifixion, saw and heard
the Lord Jesus themselves in the days of his
flesh ; but Cornelius, the centurion of Cesarea,
and Julius, the centurion who had charge of
Paul during his voyage and shipwreck on his
way to Eome, do not appear to have known
anything of our Lord except what they learned
from the apostles Peter and Paul. And
though this fact may seem scarcely worthy of
note, it is not without signification. For it
proves to us that the Gosj^el preached by
Christ's ministers has the same effect that it
had when preached l)y himself And this is
according to his promise and to his prayer in be-
half of all who should hear of him and believe
210 JULIUS THE CENTUEION.
upon him tlirougli tlie Word ; that is, the doc-
trines which he commanded his ministering
servants to teach and preach in all the world.
Accordingly, when Peter preached to the cen-
turion at Cesarea, and Paul became acquainted
with the centurion who had charge of him to
take him to Rome, we suppose the effect was
similar to that produced on those who saw our
Lord's miracles and witnessed his conduct
amid his sufferings and in death.
1. The circumstances under which we first
make the acquaintance of the centurion Julius,
the E-oman officer in command during the voy-
age and shipwreck of Paul on his way to Rome,
are worthy of consideration. When the ship
struck and was about to be dashed to pieces by
the violence of the sea, we find the military
authority of Rome on board the wrecking ship.
A number of prisoners were crowded together
in that ship on their way to the imperial city.
It was natural at such a time that every one
should try to save himself, and that the prison-
ers should not only save themselves from a
grave in the sea, but escape also from their
JULIUS THE CENTURION. 211
keepers. But tlie soldiers knowing tliat if this
sliould happen they would be blamed, pro-
j)osed to put the prisoners to death to prevent
the possibility of censure for their escape.
Here it is that the centurion Julius arrests our
attention. Being in command, his authority is
used to prevent the killing of the prisoners.
Not that he was less familiar than his soldiers
to deeds of cruelty and blood, but because of
his regard for Paul. He does not seem to have
had any care for the lives of the other prisoners,
but wishing to . save Paul, he kept them from
their purpose. — Acts xxvii. 43.
But why did the centurion desire to save the
apostle? We are told Avhen it was decided
that Paul should be sent into Italy, that he was
delivered with other prisoners " unto one
named Julius, a centurion of Auo:ustus' band,
and that when the ship touched at Sid on,"
Julius courteously entreated Paul, and gave
him liberty to go unto his friends to refresh
himself. Verses 1-3. Here is a happy contrast.
A military officer shows more kindness to the
apostle than his own countrymen, or the civil
212 JULIUS THE CENTUEIOK
authorities liave done. Felix and Festus and
tlie Jews were unreasonable in tlieir enmity and
prejudices. But should we not expect, in the
military profession, and on the part of those
who are educated to be gentlemen and to have
the command of bodies of men, and to be in-
trusted with the most important events and
negotiations, such lofty sentiments, such a keen
sense of honor, and such nobleness and gene-
rosity as to overcome all prejudice, and to treat
those in their power not only with justice but
with kindness. This we are prepared to ex-
pect from this man's education and profession,
and such was in fact the conduct of all the cen-
turions referred to in the Gospel.
Julius belono^ed to Auo;ustus' band — Cohors
Augusta — ^was the emperor's body guard. Lejp-
silts on Tacitus, His. lib. ii., says he has identi-
fied the very name of this cohort on an ancient
marble. (See also Suetonius' Nero.) This
band, therefore, has no reference to the city of
Sebaste, but to service in immediate connection
with the emperor. It was a cohort belonging
particularly to the emperor, or had charge of
JULIUS THE CEIS^TURION". 213
his j)alace and person. Julius, then, was not
an ordinary officer. He had been selected be-
cause of his eminent character and services for
a post of peculiar trust. He must then have
possessed more intelligence than most others;
was no doubt well acquainted with the world ;
a good judge of men ; has travelled and read
much ; conversed with the most intelli2:ent of
many countries and nations ; is qualified to give
information and advice at a moment's notice to
the emperor. He has been to Judea, and is
now returning to Rome, and the prisoners are
put under his care. He was able at once to see
that Paul, though a man of rather small stature
and no great bodily presence, was, however, no
common man. Paul was now full of years.
Has been a minister of Jesus Christ for nearly
thirty years. And as a man's appearance, his
expression of face, is modified by the society he
keeps, the business he follows, and more than
all by the sentiments he indulges, so no doubt
to some extent the apostle's countenance was
an index to his principles and feelings. There
are of course exceptions, but somehow or other
214 JULIUS THE CENTURIOIT.
religious creeds are seen even in the sliaj)e and
expression of men's faces. Long continued
thought and deep feelings mould the counte-
nance. Paul's face, then, must by this time
have beamed with lofty motives and heavenly
hopes. JSTor would such an observing officer as
this centurion fail to become acquainted with
the malice of his enemies, or to have heard of
the selfishness and bribery of his judges, nor
would he overlook the zeal and self-denial, and
ungrudging, whole-hearted devotion of the apos-
tle to the service of Christ. How lomr the cen-
turion has been absent from Rome we do not
know ; nor how long he was at Cesarea ; but it
is probable as Paul was a Roman citizen, and
had been two years in prison at Cesarea, that
he had learned somethins: of him before the
voyage commenced. And as Paul was famed
for learning and. eloquence, and had several
times been permitted to make an oration in his
behalf, it is not at all impossible-^but is in-
deed very probable — that Julius had at some
time heard tlie apostle ^^lead his cause before
some of the distinguished persons of Cesarea;
JULIUS THE CENTUEIOI^. 215
had heard the wonderful story of his conversion ;
and liow he had been persecuted, and was still
willing to 2:)reach and suffer and die for the
faith he had once endeavored to destroy. It is
not askino* too much to believe that he was
more or less acquainted with Paul's history be-
fore he received him as a prisoner to be con-
veyed to Rome. And as a man of the world,
with the clear eye of a well-educated and tra-
velled officer, and comparatively without the
malice or prejudices of sects or race, he was
satisfied that Paul was a man greatly misrepre-
sented and abused, and was a man of an extra-
ordinaiy character. He could see that Paul
was a man of great learning and of intellectual
power ; that he was not ignorant, vain, self-
conceited, nor morbid, nor devoted to pleasure,
nor file seeking of fame nor power. He felt
satisfied that his motives were pure ; that he
was neither knave nor fanatic. There was
something about the apostle that at once
attracted the intelligent Koman officer's kind
regards, and this impression would only be the
deeper, if he had previously learned anything
216 JULIUS THE CENTUr.ION.
of liis character or of liis doctrines tliat caused
liim to feel a peculiar interest in liim, and wish
to preserve his life for their sake. AYhat was
it, then, that attracted the kind regards of the
Koman officer? It could not have been his
sacerdotal character. For Paul was not of the
Levitical tribe, nor did he wear priestly robes.
Indeed it would seem that but few Jewish
priests, but few of the tribe of Levi, ever be-
came Gospel ministers. We read in Acts vi. 7,
that a great company of the priests were obe-
dient to the faith ; but we do not hear of them
again. There is no record of any of them hav-
ing become Christian ministers. At all events
Paul ^vas not a priest. There is in fact but one
priest who has jDower to mediate between God
and man : the " great High Priest, who has
passed into the heavens." The Church has had
prophets and apostles, and now has evangelists,
pastors and teachers, but only one priest —
Jesus Christ. It was not, therefore, because
Paul claimed any peculiar attention as a priest
that the centurion desired to save him.
The Adramittium of the narrative was not
JULIUS THE CENTUKION. 217
Hadrumatum of Africa, as some say, and liave
thereby brought confusion into the history, but
tlie Adramittium of Asia Minor. At Myra of
Lycia, a flourishing seaport in Asia Minor, the
centurion transfers the prisoners into a ship
laden with corn, bound from Alexandria to
Rome. Tliis was a large ship — live hundred
tons — having on board, beside her cargo, tAVO
hundred and seventy-six persons. The voyage
with corn from Egypt, which was then the
granary of the Roman Empire, to Italy was a
common one,* and this course from Alexandria
to" Puteoli the ordinary one. Lardiner has also
proved that it was common at this time to send
prisoners from Judea and other provinces to
Rome. ISTor was it strange that this vessel was
found at Lycia, for not having the compass,
they pursued a circuitous route, scarcely ever
going out of sight of land.
The progress of this vessel seems to have
been beset with many dangers. And by and
by, we find the centurion following the advice
of the master and owner rather than taking
the counsel of Paul, This was natural. Paul
10
218 JULIUS THE CEXTUEIOTq-.
was neither owner nor pilot, nor was lie an old
mariner. The centurion may have thought this
is a subject out of his line ; but still he found,
in the end, that Paul was right, even about
navigating the ship.
Read here verses 9, 10, 11, 12 of chapter
xxvii.
As nearly as we can make it out, the case
was on this wise : The direct course of the ship
would have been along the north coast of the
island of Candia, anciently called Crete. This
island is about forty miles broad and one hun-
dred and eighty miles long. It would, there-
fore, have been a guide to the mariners for at
least two hundred miles. But the wind blow-
ing from the northwest, instead of going along
the northern shore of this island, they steered
under its shelter on the south side, until they
passed Salmone and came to a place called
Fair Havens. Here a difference of o^^inion
arises as to what should be done. As they
had neither compass nor steam, and the winter
was upon them, and the safe season for navi-
gating the Mediterranean was over, it was pro-
JULIUS THE ce:s^turio]^. 219
posed to spend tlie winter tliere or at some
port on tlie soiitliern coast of Candia, or to
double Cajye Matala, and try to get to Plieniee,
some fifty miles fartlier, where tliere was a
more commodious harbor. Paul advised them
to remain at • Fair Havens ; but the o^Dinion of
the master and ship-owner j)revailed, and they
attempted to reach Phenice, and with what
result we shall soon see. Accordingly they
hoist anchor and give their sails to the breeze
for the port of Phenice, and with a few hours
of fair wind would have reached it ; but a ty-
phoon comes after them from the northeast,
and it is in vain they try to get to the desired
haven. All they can do is to let the vessel
scud — drive before the wind — and instead of
gaining Phenice, they come up under the lee
of Clauda, an island twenty or thirty miles
south of Phenice. But now something must
be done, for they are rushing to certain destruc-
tion on the quicksands of Africa. But it se^ms
that then as now, every ship had a boat or
boats, and that as the ships in those times for
the most part crept along the coast and kept
220 JULIUS THE CENTURION.
lip ail almost every clay's communication witli
the land, so the boat was not taken up and
secured on deck as with ns at the commence
ment of the voyage, but was kept on the water
attached to tlie stern by a roj^e, ready for use,
as we have often seen them tied to the steam-
ers on the Mississippi Kiver. Hence we are told
that they secured the boat — that is, took it
upon board the vessel so as to keep it from
being swamped, and " undergirded the shijD " *
■ — "frapped it," which means passing strong
ro2:)es under and around her hull, to strengthen
and prevent her from springing a leak or going
to pieces under the blows of the heavy seas
that struck her.
Then they "strake sail,"f that is, set the
* Lord Anson, in his voyage round the worhl, speaking of a Span-
ish man of war in a storm, says, *' they were obhgcd to throw over-
board all their upper-deck guns, and take six turns of the cable round
the ship, to prevent her opening." Other cases are also cited in the
books.
f Several expressions arc used here that are obscure. It is evi-
dent they lightened tlie ship by casting over the cumbrous wares.
The taclding means anchors, cables and baggage not absolutely neces-
sary. By strakivcj sail is probably meant letting down the mast, or
cutting it away. They were already under bare poles.
JULIUS THE CENTURION. 221
storm sails so as to steady tlie vessel, and
ste.ered as nearly as tliey could in a north-
westerly course. But on tlie third day, the
tempest continuing violent, they threw over-
board the heavy tackling of the ship. This
proves that she was now leaking, and that they
judged it necessary to lighten her as much as
possible. Then followed many days of dark-
ness and most painful uncertainty. Neither
sun nor stars appeared — no compass — no vision
of land. They knew not what moment they
might be dashed to pieces on rocks, or driven
on a lee shore. The vessel is strained more
and more, and the leaking increases. If she is
not dashed to pieces, she must soon sink in the
waves. What wild emotions — Avliat fee]in<^'*s.
fears or hopes must have filled the minds of
this crowd of two hundred and seventy-six per-
sons, as they contemplated the prospect of be-
ing wrecked on some unknown coast ! But
now we see the blessino; of liavinij: a man of
God on l)oard. One whose lieart is stayed upon
God, and can hold intercourse with heaven by
prayer.
222 - JULIUS THE CENTURION.
2. "But after long abstinence, Paul stood
fortli in tlie midst of them, and said, Sirs, ye
should have hearkened unto me, and not have
loosed from Crete, and to have gained this
harm and loss. And jiow I exhort you to be
of good cheer: for there shall be no loss of any
man's life among you, but of the ship. For
there stood by me this night the angel of God,
whose I am and whom I serve, saying. Fear
not, Paul ; thou must be brought before Csesar ;
and lo, God hath given thee all them that sail
with thee. Wherefore, sirs, be of good cheer :
far I believe God, that it shall be even as it
was told me. Howbeit, we must be cast upon
a certain island."
Whose I €1771, with the correlative, whom
I serve, is the whole of religion. To belong
to God is the height of our faith and happi-
ness. Every blessing is comprehended in this
— that we are God's, and that we serve him
with all our mind and with all our soul and
with all our strength. Surely these were glad
JULIUS THE CENTUEION. 223
tidings — good news, and emphatic, too, every
one is to be saved — not one of the two hundred
and seventy-six persons on board is to be lost
by the wreck. They were all sinners, and all
except three or four, heathens, yet all are to be
saved for the sake of Paul, the servant of Jesus
Christ. The wicked are often delivered from
temporal afflictions for the sake of the pious
among whom they live. The tares are allowed
to grow for the sake of the wheat. This was
God's gracious opportunity. It was man's ex-
tremity. Helpless, comfortless, cheerless, hoj)e-
less — it was God's favored moment to a23]3ear
for the lielp of his servants. " And God shall
help her, and that right early," that is most op-
portunely. And we have here also an illustra-
tion of the apostle's sincerity and boldness. For
if he is not truly authorized as a messenger of
heaven to make such a promise — if he is de-
ceived himself, or is seeking to imj^ose upon
others — soon his prophecy will fail and destroy
his reputation and show tliat the faith he pro-
fessed is a misera1)le delusion. But he says, I
know that it shall be just as I have said, for
224' JULIUS THE cexturio:n'.
" there stood by me tliis niglit the angel of
God," and I know it shall be as God has said.
Two things here must have arrested the atten-
tion of the other prisoners, and especially . the
master and ship-owner ; namely, that they had
made a mistake about leaving Fair Havens,
and that Paul's sagacity as a seaman was to be
relied on more than theirs ; and, secondly, that
now he had what they had not, a communication
from the Supreme Being — " the angel of God,
whom he served" — ^had declared to him the
particulars of their escape which he had gladly
announced to them. For the apostle was care-
ful to let them know that it was not from his
own natural sagacity or superior seamanship,
nor by magic or witchcraft, that he was al>le
to give them so joyful an assurance, but that it
was from the God of heaven whom he served.
He honors his blessed master by telling them
that all he knew on the subject had been re-
vealed to him. The centurion must now have
felt more than ever an interest in him, when he
discovered that he held direct communication
with heaven. If he was favorably impressed
JULIUS THE CEIS^TURION". 225
witli Ills prisoner when lie first received Lira at
Cesarea — if lie felt an interest in liim because
of liis learning, eloquence, sincerity and zeal,
or because lie seemed to liim to be a persecuted
man, having a clear liead, an lionest lieart and
a good conscience. Low mucli more may we
suppose that he felt concerned for his safety,
when he saw that he was filled with the in-
spiration of the most high God ? If he had
admired him before, because his skill and know-
ledge had enabled him to give an advice about
wintering at Fair Havens, which was better
than the opinion of the owner of the ship, and
wiser than all the wisdom of the army and
navy on board the ship, how much more must
he have reverenced him now as one whose wis-
dom was directly from heaven ? And must he
not also have been constrained to believe that
the religion taught by such a man was the true
religion ?
And the history is the more remarkable just
here, T)ecause it shows how completely Paul,
though a prisoner, is now the actual master of
the vessel. In fact, he is in cnnmand, and not
10*
226 JULIUS THE CENTURION.
tlie sliip's master nor tlie captain of tlie guard.
It was under Paul's orders the soldiers cut the
ropes of the boat and let her fall into the sea,
thereby seeming to dei^rive themselves of the
best, if not the only means left for effecting
their escape. Here, again, we see how true
Gourage snakes one a majority. We see how
completely a man of mind — one mind self-pos-
sessed and stout-hearted, and at perfect peace
with itself, and stayed* upon God, gains an
ascendency over others. Truly, it was sublime.
Paul the despised Jew — the prisoner under vari-
ous charges in custody of soldiers — on his way
to the Mamertine dungeons — yes, this is the
man who, when all on board are exhausted by
anxiety, fear, toil and fasting, stands up and
says: "I pray you," excellent sirs, master, ship-
owner, Roman commandant, and soldiers and
mariners, fellow prisoners — all of you, " I pray
you take some meat : for this is for your health :
for there shall not a hair fall from the head of
any of you." "Then were they all of good cheer,
and they also took some meat." This was pro-
bably the only thing like a meal they had taken
JFLIUS THE CENTXJEION. 22^
since the besrinnino^ of tlie storm. And after
thus refreshing themselves, we find them again
usins: the means that seemed best calculated to
secure their escape. They lightened the ship
by casting the corn into the sea. Nor could it
at this time have escaped so intelligent a man
as the centurion, to observe how much more
confident and composed the apostle was than
the rest of the company. He alone could say
anything hopeful. He alone could say : " Sirs,
be of good cheer: for I believe God, that it
shall be even as it was told me." Blessed in-
deed is the gift of faith. Blessed is he that
believes God! This is happiness. This is a
refuge that never fails. Here is the source of
true courage. The heart stayed upon God can
well afford to be magnanimous cheerful, fear-
less. " I fear God, and know 7io other fear," is
truly sublime.*
1. The accuracy of PaiiVs ])redwtion is re-
marhaUe. The vessel was to be lost, and they
were to be cast upon a certain island, yet not a
soul on board was to perish. He liimself was
* " Je crains Dieu, et n'ai point d'autre crainte."
228 JULIUS TLIE CENTUEIOIT.
to be brought before the emperor. It might
have seemed probable that they would be
wrecked on an island where there were so
many, and that a few of the persons would be
saved, but who could confidently declare that
every one on the ship should escape from a wa-
tery grave ? This prediction he could not have
made without divine authority. But each and
every particular of the prophecy was verified.
2. The conversion of Paul has long been re-
garded by Lord Littleton and others as one of
the strongest arguments in behalf of Christ-
ianity. But if the argument from his conver-
sion is so irresistible now, why was it not
equally so when the centurion was made a«>
quainted with it from the apostle's own lips '^;
Surely, the demonstration of the truth of the
religion he professed from his own account of
his conversion when it was accompanied by
prophecies and miracles that proved him to be
in communication with God, could not have
been weaker than it i3 now. We should
think the conviction on such a mind as that
of the centurion, under all the circumstances.
JULIUS TIIE CEXTUKIOX. 229
must been very strongly in favor of Christ-
ianity.
3. Let 11^ observe also in tliis history a re-
markable illustration of the philosophical Bible
truth, tliat God is sovereign and man is free.
The apostle pointedly declares to the centurion :
" Except these abide in the ship, ye cannot be
saved." Verse 31. By which we understand
the apostle at one blow to cut the Gordian
knot about sovereignty and free agency. He
has declared that the ano-el of God has told
him that every soul is to be saved from the
violence of the sea, and he " believes God that
it shall be even as it was told him ;" yet here
he says, the means adapted to prevent our per-
ishing must be used : " These must abide in
the ship, or ye cannot be saved." The end and
the means must always go together. They are
•always so in the divine mind. To trust to
means is to despise God, and to neglect the
use of the means he has appointed is presump-
tuous; is wicked; is. to tempt God. It was
God's purpose "that all should be saved from
death at that time, and in order to this result
230 JULIUS THE CEISTTURIOI^.
it was his purpose tliey sliould all remain in
the ship. " Almighty God," says the pious
Burkitt, " likes not to be tied to means himself,
but it is his j^leasure to tie us. Sometimes, to
show his sovereignty, he is pleased to work
without means ; sometimes, to show his omni-
potence, he works against means. The fire shall
not burn, the water shall not drown, the iron
shall swim, the sun shall stand stilL The
First CxVuse can suspend the power of second
causes when he pleases. But as the care of
the end belongs to God, so the care of the
means belongs to us, and must be used when
they may, and where they can be used. Ac-
cordingly here the mariners, in order to their
own and others' preservation, stay in the ship,
lighten it, undergird it, cast out their anchors,
hoist up the mainsail, loose the rudder-bands,
and do everything to their preservation whiclf
was needful. Tlie purpose of God to prolong
our lives must not lessen our care for tlie pre-
servation of our lives : wlien God has ordained
and appointed means, we cannot expect to find
sa'^ety in the neglect of those means." Human
JULIUS THE CENTURION". 231
means are not to be nes-lected because we lave
o
gracious and sovereign promises, but the rather
to be diligently used. The certainty of an
event as seen by God does not render it im-
proper for us to use the means. The determin-
ing of the event comprehends the means requi-
site to effect it. And it is our duty to use
these means as they are put into our power and
according to the divine directions, just as dili-
gently as if we could save ourselves, and then
to trust in the grace of God as wholly as if we
could do nothino; at all. Salvation is of free
grace, through the appointed means.
4. AYe have here an illustration of the bene-
fits of leing in good comjoany. For Paul's sake
the rest of the prisoners were saved from death,
either from a watery grave or from a summary
execution by the soldiers. One sinner destroy-
eth much good. The companion of fools shall
l)e destroyed. But ten righteous men would
have saved Sodom. For the elect's sake the
evil days are shortened. Let young people
then remember that human history is full of
illustrations of the truth of the fable that
232 JULIUS THE CENTUKIOI^.
teaclies tlie danger of Lad company. Tlie les-
sons of our streets and of eveiy-day life demon-
strate its truth. Common sense as well as tlie
Bible warns us to beware of evil doers.
5. If you ask us wlietlier or not Julius, tlie
centurion of Paul's voyage and shipwreck, be-
came a Cliristian, we answer that our history is
altogether silent on the subject. We cannot
answer categorically ; but we hope he did. It
is seen from our examination of the narration,
that he was under the influence of a man full
of faith and of the Holy Ghost ; of an apostle
who Avas intent, like his great master, not to
destroy men's lives, but to save them ; and to
save them not only from death temj)oral, but
from everlastino; death. And we have seen
that there are circumstances in the centurion's
connection with the apostle well calculated to
convince him that the apostle's religion was dif-
ferent from and superior to that of the Jews
and Eomans ; that by having direct intercourse
with heaven, he was clothed with credentials
that asserted the truth of the religion he pro-
fessed ; and we have found that as a centurion
JULIUS THE CENTUEIO]!?'. 233
of the royal Augustan coliort, lie must liave
been a favorite officer, a man of superior merit,
probably on account of liis learning, experience
and talents; that he was intelligent and well
travelled, and possessed of a mind compara-
tively free from prejudice and well disciplined.
Wliat then is to hinder our belief that he was
converted to Christianity? He certainly had
every oj)portunity to know the truth. Not
only had he been in the Holy Land, and been
made somewhat acquainted with the facts of
our Lord's life, death, and resurrection, and of
Paul's conversion ; for we cannot suppose such
a man to have travelled from Rome to Judea at
that tune, without having learned more or less
about these things; and then he is in daily
contact with Paul on the vova2:e, and has an
opportunity of hearing him preach for some
three montlis that they remained on the island,
where probably every day Paul was the chap-
lain of the cohort and of his fellow-prisoners
and of the crew. The centurion must have
known of Paul's miracle, and of his influence
among the peoj)le of Melita. ISTor can we be-
234 JULIUS THE CEISTTUEION".
lieve that Paul failed to take pains, as far as
^vas becoming in a prisoner, to acquaint him
with the character of Christ and the proofs of
his Messiahship. And then we must remember
that the last mention we hav^e in the sacred
narrative of the centurion, like the first, is con-
nected with kindness toward the apostle.
"Wlien they all reached Eome, cliap. xxviii. 16,
the centurion delivered his prisoners to the
captain of the guard, and Paul was allowed to
dwell by himself with a soldier that kept him.
This is recorded as a special favor granted to
the apostle, and was doubtless secured for him
by the influence of the centurion. And so we
have no doubt the unusual liberty and kind-
ness shown to Paul, when he was allowed to
dwell two years in his own hired house in
Kome, and received all that came to him,
]^reaching the kingdom of God, and teaching
those things which concern the Lord Jesus
Christ, with all confidence, no man forbidding
liim ; that all this was obtained for him by the
centurion's favorable report of his character
and conduct. It is not then, we trust, presum-
JULIUS THE CENTUEIOK. 235
ing on liistoiy, to hope tliat, like tlie jailer of
Pliilippi, lie inquired what he should do to be
saved, and receiving a similar answer, was
made a partaker of the great salvation.
6. Deliverances from the perils of a journey
hy land or of a sea voyage, and especially from
the dangers of a battle or of a shipwreck, call
for special thanksgiving, and increased devo-
tion to God and the things of eternity.
V. We should not allow ourselves to be
discourao-ed because we meet with difficulties
in the way of duty. Joseph was a favorite with
his father and with heaven, yet his early years
were crowded with what the world calls bad
luck or sad mishaps. Esther is left an orphan
in captivity, but her God prepares her for the
crown of Persia, and then places it on her
head, and brink's her to the kinoxlom to de-
liver his church and save his people from
their enemies. The Hebrews are in the way
of duty, though just after they leave Egypt
they are shut in at the Red Sea. Difficulties
at the beginning of a journey or of a voyage,
or at the opening of a new business, are no
236 JULIUS THE CENTUEION.
signs tliat it is not going to turn out prosper-
ously. The proverb is, that " a bad beginning
has a good end;" and in the sense of meeting
with hindrances or obstacles, it may be re-
garded as true. The omens of Paul's voyage »
were both good and bad. The worst feature
about it was the bad company with whom he
was to make a long voyage. Many a convict
from Great Britain to Botany Bay was compa-
ratively innocent at the beginning of the voy-
aore to what he was when he arrived at its end.
The associations of the voyage were from bad
to worse all the way. And so the corruption,
the utter loss of shame and of self-respect, has
often been completed, and the way to ruin has-
tened by confining juvenile offenders with those
that were more skilled and hardened in crime.
To a man of the education and refinement of
Paul, a long vo^^age with such 23risoners and
soldiers must have been a severe trial. But it
w^as a kind Providence that j)ut such a gentle-
man as the Boman officer, Julius, in command
of the guard on that ship. Paul had appealed
to Bome and Avas to stand before Csesar, think- ,
JULIUS THE CE^^TURION. 237
ing that, as lie ^vas a Roman citizen, lie could
find justice tliere ratlier tlian among Lis own
countrymen, or at the court of tlie j)ro-consul at
Cesarea ; but Lis voyage was in many respects
one of tLe most disao:reeable and dang-erous on
record. NevertLeless it was God's will tLat lie
sLould testify of Jesus at Eome. It was not
tLen because Paul was on board tLat tLere was
a storm and tLe vessel was lost. Paul was in
tlie way of duty, yet everytLing seemed to be
worLino^ ao:ainst liim. TLe Jews laid in Avait
for Lim, and wLen lie Lad escaj)ed tLeir Lands,
tLen contrary winds and waves are against Lim.
TLe malice of Lis enemies, tLe unreasonable
prejudice of Lis own countrymen, and tLe wars
of tLe elements, are all permitted to work
against Lim; yet tLey were all overruled.
TLey all worked togetlier for Lis good. And
if no adverse circumstances Lad followed tLis
voyage, if no Divine interferences, no sliipwreck
and no miracles, tLen tLere Lad been no cLurcL
at Malta. "TLe Lord liatli indeed prepared
Ins tlirone in tLe Leavens, and Lis kingdom
ruletli over all." " He maketL tLe wratli of
238 JULIUS THE CEI^^^TUJJION.
man to praise liim, and the remainder lie re-
strainetL" God can make all occurrences and
events promote the welfare of his holy Church.
Why then should we not leave the government
of the world in his hands, and trust most lov-
ingly to his gracious promises ? Plitherto he
hath done all things well. And his wisdom,
power, and goodness are as ample for the fu-
ture as they were for the past. The absolute
.assurance, however, of God's promises is never
to be construed into a neglect of the aj)pointed
means. It is God's plan to work by miracles
when ordinary means are used to the utmost.
" The gods help those who help themselves."
The Divine promise is, that God's presence
shall always go with his servants. The Lord
God is a sun and a shield ; he will give grace
and glory, and no good thing will he withhold
from them that walk uprightly. He can raise
up friends for them in the darkest hours, and
from the most unexpected sources. "When he
allows them to be sent to prison, he will send
his angel with them, and give them a keeper
such as he sees it is best for them to have, and
JULIUS THE centueio:n". 239
give them favor in tlie siglit of their keepers.
And if, as in this case, saints and sinners are
mixed together, crowded up on l)oard the same
ship, still God knows his people and w^ill
make a great difference between them and
those that serve him not. The special, gracious
j)resence of God is a sufficient and sure supjiort
for his people under all the trials of life. It
was no doubt a great comfort to the apostle,
that he had such companions as Timothy and
Aristarchus for the whole, or even a part of
this voyage, and that he was permitted to land
at Sidon and see the brethren there, and re-
ceive refreshments and supplies from them for
his tedious voyage ; and that at Puteoli, hav-
ing escaped the perils of the wreck, he should
find brethren who entertained him seven
days, and thence on his voyage to Rome,
till he met other brethren who came to meet
him " as far as Appii Forum and the Three
Taverns, whom when Paul saw, he thanked
God, and took courage." And after his arrival
in the imperial city, his greatest joy was to
WTite to the churches and to preach Jesus and
240 JULIUS THE CEXTURIOK
the resurrection, and salvation tlirougli liim,
Ibotli to Jews and Gentiles. But how blessed;
how much more triumphant his departure to
the New Jerusalem, which is above, the eternal
city of God ! Then he finished his course with
joy, and put on his crown of glory and immor-
tality.
" Dear Jesus grant when our work is done,
When the battle 's 'fought, the race is run,
We may hear thy voice calling us home,
Across the Kiver.
" And though its waves may be dark and cold,
May our hope be bright, our faith be bold,
'Till we are gathered safely in thy fold
Across the River."
— Mrs. C. D. S. in the " Pacific Expositor:*
XL
THE CHOICE OF A CALLIlS-a OR PROFESSIOlSr.*
Lord, what wilt thou have me to do ? — Acts ix. 6.
The tliree grand essentials to our chief end,
whidi is happiness in this life and in the world
to come, or as the catechism more definitely
and forcibly expresses it, " to glorify God and
enjoy him forever," are something to do, some-
thing to love, and something to hope for. And
in finding this something to do, to love and to
hope for, and in this doing, loving and hoping,
is the battle of life. And a great battle it is.
To be born into life is a victory, and to die is
a battle, but whether unto victory or defeat
depends uj)on the manner of our life. All the
* This is taken from a discourse entitled : *' Some thoughts on the
principles which should guide a young man in the choice of a calling
or pi'ofession, delivered in Calvary Church, San Francisco, Sabbath
evening, 14th April, 1861, as the fifth of the series before the Young
Men's Christian Association. By Rev. Dr. Scott."
11 241
242 THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSIOTT.
way, however, from tli^ cradle and our first
campaign into the world, to the coffin and our
last campaign, when we leave the field, it is all
a battle. Nor can it Le otherwise. 'Nov is it
desirable it should be otherwise. Nor is it
wise or manly to dej^lore that it is so.
Life is a battle, a stern battle, that must be
fought, and fought all the way up hill and
against an enemy's batteries. But w^ere it not
so, where were the glory of success? If
there was nothing to struggle against, where
were the honor of winning ? Opposition stimu-
lates courage ; difficulties enhance the glory of
success, until, as the poet says, " Danger's self
is lure alone." It is only the coward who sinks
into the dust because a lion is found in the
path, or a mountain avalanche has fallen across
the road. A close view, if his eye is fixed only
on going ahead in the right way, will show
him that the lion is chained, or that there is a
way over the mountain. There is no lion in
the way of duty that does not quail before an
honest eye and a bold heart. It is not only
true, as General Jackson said, that " true cour-
THE CHOICE OF A TEOFESSIOT^. 243
age makes one a majority," but it is true tlie
brave " never surrender." They never die. The
flames may turn their goods to ashes or con-
sume their dwellings. The Avaves may swal-
low up their ships. Thieves may rob their
safes and carry off their gold ; but the truly
l>rave are never conquered. When they fall it
is to live again. Their principles live. Their
example is imperishable. The Sage of Marsh-
iield, in his own dying words, still lives. Even
on earth they generally win more than they
lose. The highest and purest happiness is
found in a firm adherence to principle and a
faithful discharge of duty. Having ascertained
our duty, then, we must perform it. It is more
than life. We must conscientiously and scru-
pulously live up to our principles, if we would
be happy. The consequences of doing our duty
l^elong to God. An analysis of the text gives
us three points that may help us to ojDcn up
our theme, which is some thoughts ot^ the
PRINCIPLES which should GUIDE A YOUNG MAN
IN CHOOSING AN EMPL0Y3IENT OR CALLING FOR
LIFE.
24:4 THE CHOICE OF A PKOFESSION".
First. The text shows tliat God's jDower is
absolute over all creatures and agencies, and
that it is sometimes displayed Avitli tlie design
of saving, when, to our view, it w^ould seem
that his purpose was to destroy. Saul was
struck down, not to die, but to be raised up
again a new man, that he might become Paul
the apostle of the Gentiles.
Second. We have here the sincere prayer and
earnest cry of a truly converted man, Lord^
what wilt tliou have me to do f
It is not what shall my neighbor do ; but
what wilt thou have me to do ? It is not what
wilt thou have me to say^ but what wilt thou
have me to do ? It is not the man of profes-
sions merely, th^ talker and maker of fair
promises that is the Christian; but he that
doeth the will of God. The true inquiry of
every renewed heart is to know the mind and
will of God, and then to conform to it — to know
his duty and do it. We may as well look to
find matter without form or gravitation, or fire
without heat, as to find a man converted to
God without operative grace.
THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSION. 245
Tldrd. We see that God is pleased to give
an answer to tlie serious inquiry : "What wilt
thou liave me to do T Arise, said the Lord,
cmd go info the city, and it slicdl he told thee
^oliat tliou must do. Before he was going into
the city to do the devil's bloodiest work — to
persecute the followers of Christ unto death.
JN'ow God tells him to go into the same city
for a very different j)urpose. His authority,
before, was from the high priests, and his tra-
vellino; escritoire w^as full of commissions srivino;
power to destroy; now his authority is from
heaven, and to be instructed unto salvation for
himself and for others. And althouo-h Paul's
conversion and call to the ministry and a230stle-
ship are miraculous, yet his case suggests that
it is a proper inquiry for every one to make :
" Lord, what wilt thou have me to do V
1. It is ol^vious that our choice of a pursuit,
employment, calling, profession or the kind of
business we are to follow by which to make a
living, and in which to serve our generation,
our country and our God, slioidd he determined
by j^rinciple, arul not merely from chance or the
246 THE CHOICE or a professio]^.
wJiims of a moment. It requires no argument
to prove tliat young men, as free agents and
rational, intelligent beings, should be governed
by liigli coiTect principles in their choice of a
profession for life. It is nevertheless true, that
apparently trivial occurrences have exercised a
controlling influence over the whole course of
the lives of distino-uished men. Sir "Walter
Scott's lameness probably had a great deal to
do in shaping his habits, and enabling him to
write the border tales and historic novels that
have made him immortal in the English tongue.
Washington's love for his mother kept him
from being a sailor, and prepared him to be-
come the leader of the American armies and
the Father of his country. Joseph's many
colored coat excited the envy of his brethren,
who threw him into a j)it till the Ishmaelites
came along, and then sold him into Egypt, and
the removal of Jacob and the bondage all fol-
lowed. Who could have anticipated such re-
sults from Joseph's coat the bright morning he
left Hebron to seek for his brethren who kej^t
their flocks near Shechem ? or who could have
THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSION. 247
predicted that Moses' blow on an Egyptian's
head as he was striving with a Hebrew in the
iiekl, woukl lead to his exile and his forty
years' education in the wilderness around
Mount Sinai, that was to qualify him for the
great business of his life — the leading of the
He])rews out of Egypt and through that same
wilderness to the borders of the promised land?
But the occurrences or events that exerted a
controllino" influence over their whole subse-
cpient life were small only in aj^pearance. They
ivere in reality great events — great because
they were essential parts of " the stupendous
^\'hole " in the hands of an all- wise and Al-
mighty Providence. They were the spring
heads of a mighty stream. Although it is a
part of the plan or economy of the Supreme
Providence to produce great results from small
beginnings, it is not true that there is any
chance in the divine economy. All things are
governed by laws. Eternal j)i*inciples lie at
the beorinnnioc of every man's course in life as
well as in the production of the universe.
The first thing, then, to be known in regard
248 THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSION.
to the choice of a business for life is, tliat it is
according; to the will of God. This is essen-
tial. For his will is the supreme law — tlie
only infallible rule of right and wrong. No
matter, therefore, how great the inducements
held out to do this, or eno^acre in that or the
other business, if it involves a sin against God,
or requires the violation of any of his command-
ments, you must not choose it. How can you
sin against God, and do that great wickedness
in his sight? How, then, are you to know
what is according to his will I There are va-
rious methods by which w^e may find out what
is agreeable to the will of God, but the main
thing for a young man in choosing a business
or profession, is to have a satisfactory answer
in his own conscience - to the question : " Lord,
what wilt Thou have me to do ?" Gifts and
opportunities are to be considered, but the
main question is transferred from time to eter-
nity, from earth to heaven, and, as it Avere, from
our own bosom to the mind of our Maker.
What pursuit in life is it the will of God, wlio
has made me, who is daily to supjport me, and
THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSION". 249
who is to be my final Judge, that I should
choose? This is the first and main question.
And in seeking an answer, the first thing is to
obey God in reference to our personal salva-
tion. If any man will do the will of God, he
shall know of the doctrine whether it be of
God or not. What, then, is God's will ? Our
Lord says: He that liearetli my word and he-
lieveth on him that sent me, hath everlasting
life, and shall not come into condemnation ; but
is passed from death unto life. And when the
Jews asked him, saying: What shall we do,
that we might work the works of God ? Jesus
answered and said unto them, This is the work
of God, that ye believe on him whom he hath
sent. John v. 6. And a2:ain, we know that it
is the commandment of God, that we should
believe upon his only begotten Son Jesus
Christ. Accordingly the disciples were sent to
preach everywhere repentance toward God and
faitli in Christ. The first duty of every one,
therefore, is to believe the testimony God has
given of his Son Jesus Christ, and to accept of
him as he is oifered in the Gospel as our pro
11*
250 THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSIOjSr.
j)]iet, priest and king. Until we are reconciled
to God tlirouo"li tlie blood of Jesus Clirlst as
our passover sacrificed for our sins, and feel our
isrnorance and need of divine illumination and
guidance, Ave are not prepared to appreliend
fully tlie momentous question of life : Lord^
vjliat luilt tliou liave me to do ? It is then our
duty first to seek the kingdom of God and his
righteousness. It is first both in point and in
importance. But how may a young man know
w^hat the will of God is ? Are we to rely ujDon
dreams, or visions, or to expect voices from
heaven, or are miracles to designate the busi-
ness we are to follow? By no means. The
age of such miracles is past. But there are
considerations which, when j^roperly and prayer-
fully apj)rehended, will enable a young man to
know what his pursuit in life should be, quite
as satisfactorily as if miracles were wrought.
For example, when he is debating in his mind
whether he shall engage in this business, or
choose this or that profession, let him ask him-
self: Is the lousiness or profession which he is
about to choose, the one that is the most promi-
THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSIOl^T. 251
neiit ill liis mhid, wlieu lie is nearest to God —
when lie is the most humble before God
and has the most exalted views of the divine
character, and the profonndest reverence for
the revealed will of God ? Has the calling or
profession he is about to choose the strongest
hold upon his mind, when he fixes his eye most
steadily upon death and the judgment seat ?
Is it the business he would prefer to be engaged
in when death shall overtake him ? Will it
heiiY the light of eternity, and the scrutiny of
the Judge of cpaick and dead ? And, secondly^
let every young man be careful that the busi-
ness he selects has the approbation of his own
conscience. The whole human heart is exceed-
ingly deceitful ; but the conscience is the most
delicate, susceptible, sensitive organ of the
liuman soul. It is so delicate, and so important
is the moral faculty within us, that I would fain
have you protect it -from any abuse and from
every violence. So wondrous is the moral
economy under which we live, that he who
cannot resist temptation is wanting in the first
attribute of humanity. The very-first yielding
252 THE CHOICE or a peofessio::^.
to temptation debases ug. Every unrighteous
deed does the actor ten thousand fold more
harm than it inflicts upon the sufferer. The
false man is more false to himself than to any
one else. So that it is literally better to be
sinned aD:ainst than to sin ourselves. Better
suffer ten thousand wi'onsrs than to commit one
wrong in tiying to avenge ourselves. The fire
of a guilty passion may scorch and wither
others, but it burns the hottest at the centre/
which is the sinner's OAvn heart. And if this
relation ceased at death it were not so terrible ;
but death only makes it worse by increasing
the intensity of the woe, and adding eternity to
it. Every time a man does a Avrong thing, he
subtracts so much from the delicacy and energy
of his moral nature. And as our medical men
tell us that all suffering and all violence done
to our physical system, before birth, impairs
our constitution, and sends us into the world
shorn of much of the energy, or blunted in the
fineness of the perceptions we should other-
wise have possessed : so every violation of con-
science in thi^ life sends us forward into eter
THE CHOICE OF A PE0FE3SI0:N'. 253
nity maimed and crippled, and incapal3le of the
hiofliest ilio'lits of bliss wliicli we mio;lit Lave
readied by maintaining our moral nature more
perfect. "Every instance of violated conscience,
like every broken string in a liarp, will limit
tlie compass of its music and mar its harmonies
forever." It is of the utmost consequence, then,
that you preserve a good conscience. It is your
most important faculty. And yet it is exceed-
ingly difficult to keep it from being led astray
through ignorance, or by prejudice or passion.
So tender and susceptible is it of impressions,
that it has been educated to "sanction somewhere
or other every sin and crime that fills the pages
of human guilt. It is impossible, therefore, to
overstate the necessity of having a good con-
science ; a conscience enlightened by the word
and spirit of God. For, unless our moral na-
ture respond to our intellectual, our bosom is
the seat of terrible war. There must be peace
at home. The conscience must be satisfied with
the choice of the profession we make, or we
shall want moral courage for its prosecution.
To undertake the pursuit of a business that
254 THE CHOICE OF A PF.OFESSIO^.
our own lieart is all the time telling lis is wrong,
is like a general marching an army into an ene-
my's country and leaving the fortresses and
forces of his enemy unconquered in his rear.
Tliey will of course annoy him, cut off his sup-
plies, and finally destroy him, unless he is able
to turn upon them and crush them. But it is
not every conscience that is a safe guide. An
hour aixo Saul of Tarsus had as cle^r a con-
science that he was right when going to Da-
mascus to persecute men and women unto death
for being the followers of Jesus, as when he
vrent to CsBsar's bloch to be beheaded for his
faith in Jesus as the Son of God. The Jews
did not know that Jesus was the Son of God
and the Lord of glory when they crucified him.
They put him to death with a good conscience,
thinking they were serving God and their
country ; yet they did it with wicked hands.
They committed an awful crime, though uncon-
scious of it at the time. While, therefore, the
conscience is not always to be trusted — for
there is a blind conscience, an ignorant, unen-
lio"htened conscience — it becomes, every one to
THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSIO^T. 255
try Ills conscience by prayer and by the Word
of God, and be sure to have its approbation
at tlie moment that he feels the eye of God
beaming most fully uj^on him. And again —
Thirdly. Let a young man, in choosing his
pursuit for life, examine carefully whether the
business he is setting his heart upon inspires
him with a strength of loill to execute all the
plans which are necessary to carry it out. It
is folly to choose any calling that we have not
courage to follow. So tremendous is the power
of the will as an administrator of human affairs,
that under God, and next to God, it is omnipo-
tent. In debating in your own mind, then,
whether or not you should choose this profes-
sion or tliat calling, strive to ascertain which
one it is that inspires your soul Vvdth the great-
est strength, and girds you up the most for dif-
ficulties and for victory. In relation to which
pursuit of life do you feel that success is in
you ? As you look at its difficulties and dan-
gers, and greatness, do you feel within yourself,
God helping, that you have the elements of
success within you ?
256 THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSION".
One of oiir countiymen long devoted to our
educational institutions, in describing tlie men
we want in our day, said : " We want no men
wlio will change like tlie vanes on our steeples,
with the course of the popular wind ; but we
want men who, like mountains, will change the
course of the winds." These are just the men
wanted now: oneii ivlio^ like moimtains of gra-
nite^ ID ill cluing e tlie -course of tlie ivincls. Men
who are not at all distressed about the hosan-
nah of the crowd ; men who lea.ve popularity
for dolls, and remember, with an ancient, that
the path of the gods is steep and craggy ; men
who are willing sometimes to go to Coventry,
and let the populace howl on their coldest con-
tempt ; men who j)refer the right to the great-
est temporal advantage or honor ; who can con-
test the frowns of fortune, and make good their
course over the roughest seas. The ancients
thouf>-ht a virtuous man bearinor misfortunes a
far nobler sight than to see him basking in the
sunshine. It is pleasant to see a clipper come
flying into our glorious Gate with sails all set
and colors flying ; and yet, more heroic feelings
THE CHOICE or A PROEESSIOTT. 257
are stirred witliiii us wlien we see a noble ves-
sel tl^at lias battled witli winds and waves for
six montlis, still making good lier liarbor,
tliouo-li some of lier sails are torn and some of
lier masts shivered, and every timber in lier has
been tried by the tempest.
It is impossible to overestimate the import-
ance of a rigid adherence to right principles
where public sentiment is so fickle and yet so
potential as with us. Public sentiment — the
embodied opinions of the public — is like the
atmosphere. It is sweet and fresh, pure and
gentle, or hot and feverish, just as the breath
that is breathed into it is hot or fresh. When
it comes from the marsh or the fever-guarded
district, it is sickly ; but if from the lovely vale
or tlie pure mountain heights, it is healthful.
But when the hot sands and sulphurous blasts
of the desert gather into the moving mass, then
their course is marked with desolation. The
particles of air and grains of sand are in them-
selves small and feeble. It is their aggregation
*tliat makes them powerful. It is the poison
they gather in coming over the infected district,
258 THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSION.
and tlie momentum tliey acquire in tlieir j^ro-
gress, that make them so pernicious. Aijd it
is just so with public opinion. One man's call-
ing, plans, thoughts and preferences by them-
selves may be so insignificant as to have but
little iniluence; but when joined with those of
his neighbors, they assume a shape and a
weight that make them influential. There is
then an individual responsibility resting on
every one for his part of public sentiment. As
threads make the web, so do individual opin-
ions form pu1)lic opinion. And when, as is
sometimes the case, public opinion is wrong,
then it is we are to show our attachment to
our country and our adherence to jmnciple, by
maintaining the right, regardless of the fury of
the storm. A time-serving trimmer deserves
nothing but contempt. Let us know Avhat a
man really is, and then, even if we differ from
]]hn, still we respect his honesty and courage.
We know where he is, and that he stands
by his principles and is true to his flag;
that he will not sail under false colors. But •
one says, it is of no use, l)ecause I cannot realize
THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSIO]^. 259
what I wisli. The 2:)ublic are against luc. I
oaiinot resist the tempest. Now it may not be
given ordinarily to one man, nor to any one
age, or class of men, to monlcl public opinion
all at once. It is usually the growth of many
days, and the product of many minds ; but still,
an individual responsibility rests on every one
for his part of it. IS^or is it given to any one to
know how great the effect may be of a single
utterance of the right word, or of a good exam-
2^1e, or of the lifting up of the right banner at
the critical moment. The Kev. Dr. Wayland,
of Uliode Island, holds some views that we
cannot receive, yet we respect his character, and
commend the following explanation of his suc-
cess as an author, a teacher, and as a minister.
It is reported that when asked how he had
])een able to do so much, and to live so long
and so. happily in the same community, he re-
plied : " Whatever success I may have had in
life, is owing simply to my holding on and
sticking to my appropriate work." Yes, young
gentlemen, this is just it. Hold on and ham-
mer on, and look up, and never yield to difficul
260 THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSION.
ties. Never think of giving up and lying clo^vn
in despair. You may not be responsible for
the storm ; but you are responsible liow you
bear it — for holding to right principle — and so
far at least, it is your duty to make a stand
aorainst the flood. There is nothino: more sub-
lime than honesty. Be sure, then, to ascertain
what true principles are ; and then hold on to
them, come what may. In all your business
transactions, whatever profession or calling you
choose, let justice be your pole-star. The pro-
verb, "Let justice be done, though the heavens
fall," seems to imply a fallacy. For the more
justice is done, the more the heavens will not
fall. It is impossible for the heavens to fall, if
justice is done. It is only by wrong doing the
pillars of the skies can be shaken down. If
then already,* or even at the threshhold of life,
you should find that you have made a mistake
and chosen a calling that is not morally right,
then you should leave it as quickly as you
would leap from a vat of boiling brimstone, if
you should fall into one, and be left with
])ower to exert yourself to get out. If a barber
THE CHOICE OF A PllOFESSIOX. 261
should batter liis razor s edge on a flint stone
as a 2:)reparation for shaving, you would not l)e
likely to trust yourself his hands. Why then
Avill you risk wearing off or gaping or dulling
your conscience by daily putting it into con-
tact with known error, or moral wrong doing ?
2. In the second place, allow me to s^, some
regard should be had to your specicd quaUfica-
t ions for the pursuit in life ivliicli you are to
follow. The gifts w^hich God bestows upon
his creatures are indications of their sjihere of
existence. The lins and breathing api^aratus
of fish are adapted to the sea ; and so the wings
and shape of birds indicate that their home is
in the air. And the human form and constitu-
tion cleoi'ly point out our adaptedness to the
world in which we live ; into which we have l^een
born and out of wdiich we are to die, Avhen our
course is finished. But we have a more specific
adaptation than what is here indicated. God
in all ages has endowed some men with special
qualifi (nations for certain pursuits. A careful
stud} of history shows that all the ages of man-
kind are united as links in a chain ; that all
262 THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSIOIT.
generations of men, like the geological dynas-
ties and periods of the planet, are connected to-
gether, and exert an influence upon and are
preparatory to all that follow. Past genera-
tions lap over upon us, just as we will do upon
the one that follows, and through it upon all
that shtill follow to the end of time. And so
also different nations and races act upon one
another, and each ao-e of the world and each
nation has had, and still has its peculiar, dis-
tinctive mission in the world to fulfil. And
for its mission, providence allotted to it the
proper gifts and opportunities. But again, this
is true of individuals as well as of ages and na-
tions. Cain was the first builder of cities, and
from him we have our word civilization. Jabal
was the leading agriculturist of h*s age, being
" the father of such as dwell in tents and have
cattle," and ' his statue should therefore crown
the entrance to our cattle-shows and agricultu-
ral fairs. And Jubal, his brother, was "the
father of all such as handle the harp and the
organ ;" and his statue should therefore prevail
over all the images of gods and goddesses of
THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSION. 2 03
tlie lieathen in oiir concert lialls. And Tubal-
Cain, the Vulcan of the Old Testament, should
preside ovei* tlie blacksmith and the whitesmith,
and the goldsmith and the mechanic's hall, for
he was the father of all the mechanics, " the in-
structor of every artificer in brass and iron."
We are authorized also, by the word of God, to
say that gifts and talents of men, by which they
are adapted to the various employments of life,
are imparted to them by the Creator. " There
is a spirit in man ; and the inspiration of the
Almighty givetli him nnderstanding." The
classic page as well as the inspired wiiters tell
us that Grod has taug:ht man how to sow the
wheat, thresh out the corn, and to get riches,
and to fell the trees, and even how to iiixht.
It w^as God that gave Moses administrative
power, and to Aaron the gift of eloquence.
Othniel, Samson, Gideon, and Daniel were
raised up to be warriors ; and so were Alexan-
der the Great, Wellington, Napoleon, Have-
lock, and Jackson. And Cyrus was the Lord's
anointed for the special j^urpose of delivering
his church out of Babylon. ''And the Lord
264 THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSIOIS'.
spake unto Moses, saying, See, I have called by
name Bezaleel the son of Uri, the son of Hur,
of the tribe of Jnclah : and I have filled him
with the sj^irit of God, in wisdom and in nn-
derstanding, and in knowledge, and in all
manner of workmanshij:) : and I, behold 1
have given him Aholiab, the son of Ahisha-
mach, of the tribe of Dan; and in the
hearts of all that are wise-liearted I have put
wisdom, that they make all that I have com-
manded thee." And so of statesmen, artists,
orators and j)hilosophers, they were specially
blessed with the gifts or endowments that were
fitted for the positions or works in life which
they accomplished. Let every young man,
therefore, carefully examine and see whether
his mental and moral endowments fit him for
the business he is about to choose, or whether,
at least, he feels within himself that he has the
capacity and the energy that will enable him
to prej^are himself for it. It is said in the Life
of the late Moses Stuart, one of the best men
and best scholars of our country and of our age,
that the trustees of Andover elected him to a
THE CHOICE OF A PKOFEfSIOI^. 265
professorship, not becaaso lie was prepared, but
])ecaiise tliey were satisfied it was in him, and
that he would thoroughly prepare himself for
it. And nobly did he justify their confidence.
Be sure, then, that you are fitted for the place,
rather that it is merely for you.
3. In the third place, young men should con-
sider it as a great principle to follow in choos
ing their occupation, that it is one ly wliicli tliey
may Iwpe to he useful^ to do good in the world.
Having determined that all men are not equally
fitted for all pursuits, but that some are better
qualified for one employment, and others for
another, it is plainly the will of God that labor
should be divided, and that the arts and pur-
suits of life should be so multi2:)lied and meted
out, that all should have somethino: to do. The
rule by which callings are graduated is not a
I'ule to determine which are the hio^hest or the
lowest. It has reference only to two things,
namely : that the calling is a righteous or law-
ful one in the sight of God, and that we have
gifts from God for its prosecution. True honor
lies in the manner of fillins; such a callino;. No
12
266 THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSIOlSr.
matter wliat it is, if it is one tliat God approves
of and has called iis to ; then, if we fill it well,
it is honorable. One of our old divines has
said, that if God were to commission two an-
gels, the one to rule an empire and the other to
sweep the streets of a city, both would proceed
to their woi^v with equal alacrity. As preju-
dice may exist in some minds simply from the
want of clearly apprehending the distinction
and relation that must exist between the difi*er-
ent callings and emj)loyments of men, we
have here a few words to say concerning them.
A?i, and the If'me Aits, and Mamffacturingy
are terms in everybody's mouth, and yet but
few seem to see how they are united in concord.
The lowest or simplest idea of manufacturing
is suggested by the etymology of the word,
which is from the Latin^ and means " the mak-
ing of anything by the hands;" that is^ with-
out the help of instruments or machines. And
yet our manufactured wares and goods are
almost all made in whole or in part by ma-
chinery. The literal signification is,, therefore,
so limited that it properly applies to but few
THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSION. 267
tiling's. For we liiis'e Lut few articles that Lave
proceeded from the human hand onty, acting
mechanically ; l)ut the moment a directing in-
tellio^ence is seen in the workino^ of the hand,
then we liave AjL Hence we find in the books
and in constant use the phrases, " the art of
ship-building;" " an art in making tools, wag
ons and ploughs," and the like. And one step
more, and we have the Fine Arts, namely, the
jDursuits of man in which his hand and his head
and his heart are all workino* tos^ether. The
hand is at the bottom and it is at the top of
everything. Without manufacturing nothing
is done ; and without intelligence to direct the
hand, nothing is done ; and without taste, an
enlightened heart, with the directing mind, there
is no Fine Art. And as this triple group is
combined to a greater or less degree in all our
pursuits and enjoyments, and thus the whole
man is consulted and honored, so it is with all
the proper pursuits of mankind. They are all
honorable and they are all united. The farmer
has need of the merchant and banker, medical
man and mechanic, and all these depend ujDon
268 THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSION.
tlie farmer for their bread. The universal law
is, I have need of you, and you have need of
me.
But still the question is not answered : Is
the young man to be a farmer, a mechanic, a
merchant, a physician, a teacher, a la^^^^er, a
sailor, a soldier, or a minister of the Gospel ?
All these emj)loyments and the multitudinous
branches or modifications of them, that are too
tedious to be enumerated, are lawful and mo-
rally right in the sight of God. The cultiva-
tion of the earth is, of course, the oldest pur-
suit of man, and its importance is obvious. All
other professions and pursuits depend ujDon
agriculture. The temporal wants of the world
must be supplied. And here we notice a poj)u-
lar fallacy which has long occupied the minds
of our countrymen. They have been disputing
which was the greatest, " King Commerce,"
"King Gold," "King Cotton," or "King La-
bor," whereas, in fact, the true and mightiest
king is Bread. And while there are millions
of mouths to be fed, and millions of acres that
want hands to till them, it is clearly the will
THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSION-. 269
of lieaven that millions of our race should find
the pursuit in which they are to do the most
good by toiling in the field. And of median-
iced industry y we may say it is essentially con-
nected with agriculture, because it lives upon
the produce of the ground, and it gives the
farmer his house and barns, mill and impale-
ments, and then it builds ships which the mer-
chant emplo3^s in carrying the products of the
dinner's lands from one country to another.
And thus the farmer, mechanic and merchant
are component parts of human society mutually
or reciprocally dependent upon each other, and
the banker is but another member of the same
firm, and Providence indicates by gifts and
resources wdiich branches of this business each
one is to pursue. The medical profession is
ancient and honorable. The great Eedeemer
was a healer of the bodies of men as well as
the Saviour of their souls. It is manifestly our
duty to take care of the body. For sound
health, and a body perfect in all its members,
is necessary as an instrument for serving our
fellow men. But few consider how much so-
2Y0 THE CHOICE OF A PE0FESSI0I5".
ciety owes to tlie medical profession. But few
consider how mucli suffering they save us
from, and how many lives they prolong and
how much usefulness and happiness they pro-
duce in the world. The world is ungrate-
ful to medical men. In learning, talents, dili-
gence, science, self-denial, toil and usefulness,
it is difficult to take too high a view of the
professors of the healing art. But perhaps
stronger prejudices exist against the legal pro-
fession than against the medical. But where-
fore \ It is not sinful, jper se. It is impossi-
ble to think so, or to maintain any such an
opinion. For God himself is a lawgiver and
judge and a law executioner by his laws, which
he has made to pervade everything. Does not
the legal profession expound the principles of
truth, and teach us what equity and justice are,
and vindicate the rights and redress the wrongs
of society ? The history of the legal profession
shows that hunlan learning, science and liberty
and civilization and of Christianity owe a great
debt to its members. The profession of the law
is indeed a noble one. Its true object is to pro-
TIIE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSIOI?-. 271
mote wliat is just, equitable and right. Statute
and civil laAv embrace a large portion of human
liistory, and the common law has its deep
foundation in man's moral nature, and regu-
lates his whole ethical economy. If it is not
always administered by able and time men, it is
not for the want of a training, discipline and
excitement that should produce such. And as
a body, we believe, legal men are men of high
principles, and the conservators of human rights
and of eloquence and sound learning. But,
perhaps, the work of the teacher is more im-
portant stilL In all the other pursuits of men,
the work is done with the materials furnished.
In all other departments of human labor, even
the office of the pulpit, the influence exerted is
upon and through agencies that have ])een
already developed, either physical, scientific,
military, philosophical, political or literary;
but it is the teacher's office to form the mind
and the character — to prepare the instruments
by which all the other pursuits of life are to be
carried on. Thus it is the law of heaven that
man's work should be associative. One man
2T2 THE CHOICE of a profession
can neitlier build a navy nor carve a wliole
cathedral himself; but he 'can do his part, and
when others do their part, and the results are
associated, the work is done. And thus, also,
the promotion of our own individual welfare is
not only lawful, but a duty, when it does not
interfere with our higher duties to God and-
our fellow-men. The true aim of all personal
improvement should be the gloiy of God and
the happiness of liis creatures. For whatever
is truly great in humanity is the expression of
man's delight in God's work. It does not fol-
low because a man is forced to meclianical labor
for his bread, or to wear away his life in ceiled
chambers behind a desk, or to dig his life out
of dusty furrows, that he is cut off from the
teachings of liis Maker. But if a man allow his
profession or occupation to lead him away from
the Great Teacher, and blind his eyes to the
splendor of his works, and Innd up his life-
blood from its beating responsively to the calls
of his omnipotent love, then indeed he is blind
and helpless and miseral)le. But it is not
wrong — rather it is a man's duty to support his
THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSIOI^. 273
family, or to help liis parents in old age, or to
win a Inicle, or to endow a college by making
money; but when at his work, or engaged in
his profession, he should love, and love every
touch and every blow and every step that it
requires to make it square work, perfect work,
finished work, such as the great Grand Master
M'ill accept. It is only when a man has an en-
thusiastic love for his calling, that the spirit is
upon him, prompting him to its highest attain-
ments. A love for one's callini^ is essential to
success and happiness. Fame and money and
position are proper objects to aim at in a sub-
ordinate decrree. But the love of these thinc^s
must never be the first motive in the choice of
a profession. Mr. Kuskin, in one of his lectures
on Ai't, lays down the rule for his pupils in
this way: "Does your art lead you, or your
gain lead you ? You may like making money
exceedingly ; hut if it come to a fair question
^vhether you ^re to make five hundred pounds
less by this business or to spoil your building,
and you choose to spoil your work, there's an
end of you. So you may be as thirsty for fame
12*
274 THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSIOIS".
as a cricket is for cream ; but if it come to a
fair question, whether yon are to please the
mob, or do the thing as yon know it ought to
be done, and you can't do both, and choose to
please' the mob, it's all over with you ; there's
no hope for you ; nothing that you can do will
ever be worth a man's glance as he passes by.
The test is absolute, inevitable — Is your art
first with you V *
It is essential, moreover, to this depth of feel-
ing in one's profession, that it should be viewed
in its relations to the works and laws of God
as the Creator and governor of the universe,
and that the mind should not be allowed to
dwell on petty and mean cares. Things are
very much as we conceive of them as to their
eifect upon us. Whatever business, therefore,
you are to follow, do not let its little chagrins
and disagreeable points fill your head. The
constancy of small emotions Avill make your
mind and heart little, if not mean. Strive to
overcome all littleness, all jealousy and preju-
dice. Never mind what others think or say of
* Lecture on the Influence of the Imagination.
THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSIOl^. 2^5
your calling, if yon feel witliin yourself that it
is right according to the will and providence of
God. Keep your eyes and ears open, and your
hands employed, and your mind quiet, peaceful,
stayed upon God, so that 3^ou may forget your-
self, and live out of yourself in your work, and
in the calm and beauty, or grandeur and mighti-
ness of God's great and lovely world. If there
is grandeur in your own soul, you will see it
outside of yourself, and find it in others also.
Miracles only come to those who believe in
miracles. The proverb says : " If you meet with
no gods, it is because you harbor none."
It is then the law of God that man should
labor, and labor under constraint of law. It is
an error to say that we are born free, and that
the fewer laws we are bound by, the fewer
penalties we shall have to endure. This never
w^as true. The laws of God are barriers to keep
us from rushing over the precipice. It is only
the lower animals that are comparatively ex-
empt from laws. " JSTo human being, however
great or powerful, Avas ever so free as a fish.
There is always something he must, or must
276 THE CHOICE OF A PE0FE3SI0X.
not do ; wliile the iisli may do whatever lie
likes." Indeed, it is in man's moral restraint
rather than in his liberty, that we see the gran-
deur of his . nature. If the buttei^y is more
beautiful and free than the bee, still the bee is
the more honorable, because it is the subject of
laws. And so it is throughout the universe.
It is a compend, a code of laws, and - the re-
straint of laws distinguish the higher and more
noble creatures and things from those that are
inferior. The archangel and the insect; the
orbits and the oscillations of the heavenly bo-
dies and the mote in the sunbeam ; the power
and glory of all things and creatures are in
theii^ obedience to law. The king of day has
no liberty, but a d^ad leaf on the hill-side
has much. The three talismanic words of na-
tional existence are laboe, law, and coueage ;
or the plough, the restraint of laws, and the
sword ; so are they also the elements of indivi-
dual strength and happiness. But as no true
and lasting j)eace has ever been won by subter-
fuge, so there is no peace for you but that
which you shall win over self, shame and sin.
THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSIO^^. 277
It is altogetlier a mistake to talk of victory as a
chance. There is no chance and no Wanlsis in
your history. All you have to secure is your
own verdict for right doing, and you have your
cause. Every work well done is a victoiy.
And as gaslight is the best city police by
nio:ht, so God has ordained laws for the uni-
verse, by which to protect it ; for by these laws
he brings to light and to a pitiless publicity,
sooner or later, all wrono- doinsr. The wao-es
of sin is death. Darkness is the true friend of
no man. For all sin, like murder, will out.
And, moreover, by the very same laws, God has
guaranteed that to the powers of sanctified in-
tellect all recesses shall be opened, and all
secrets revealed. Eternal sunshine glows around
it. To it there is no height inaccessible, no
depth that cannot be fathomed, no distance it
cannot traverse. For all created thino's are
governed 1)y laws, and as far as we understand
them so far the Creator invests us with his own
attributes. It is by a knowledge of God's laws
that we approach his attributes when we speak
with the flaming tongue of lightning across a
278 THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSIOIS^
continent, or navigate our way tlirougli clouds
and thick darkness, and contrary winds, to a
desired port on tlie other side of the globe.
Be assured then, young gentlemen, the condi-
tions of life and death in yourself are the con-
ditions of life and death in the nation of which
you are a part. What is true here is true eve-
ry^diere. Essentially the whole world and all
its ages and races are alike. Do not deceive
yourselves then with the idea that you may be
advancing in unconscious ways to God and to-
ward success. Do not go about to find an
oracle or soothsayer to predict what you may
become. You have it, each one of you has it
in his power, at this very instant, to determine
in what direction he will turn his steps, and
what he will become, God helping him. Ac-
tions of resolute virtue are within the reach of
every one of you. Honesty of purpose, single-
ness of mind, and steadfast devotion to a lawful
patriotic business are within your reach, and
challenire the admiration of mankind. And the
best way of gaining strength of mind and ele-
vation of purpose is to dwell long and fondly
THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSION. 279
on, and ponder seriously on most worthy ex-
amples. As the prophet, by steadily gazing on
the way by which his prece23tor ascended to
heaven, obtained his mantle, and a double por-
tion of his spirit.
The Gospel MixiSTPtY is a profession of vaster
sco]3e and greater importance than any other.
It must be so unless it is a gross imposture.
If Christianity is what it claims to be, and the
ministry of the word of reconciliation is a
divine institution, then the preaching of the
Gospel is the greatest work that can be com-
mitted to man. It is not necessary now to
prove the divine origin of our holy religion, nor
to show that God has a Church in the world
havino: sacraments and ordinances, and an order
of men called to preside in it, and administer
its sacraments and expound the divine word to
the people, showing them the w^ay of salvation.
The Apostle Paul has briefly stated the argu-
ment. The word is nio:h thee ; even the word
of faith which we preach, namely, that if thou
shalt confess with thy mouth the Lord Jesus,
and shalt believe in tliine heart that God hath
2^0 THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSIOT?".
raised liiin from tlie dead, tliou slialt be saved.
For witli the lieart, man belie vetli unto right-
eousness; and with the mouth confession is
made unto salvation. For the Scripture saith,
Wnosoever believeth on him shall be saved.
How then shall they call on him in whom
they have not believed ? And how shall they
believe in him of whom they have not heard ?
And how shall they hear without a preacher ?
And how shall they preach except they be sent ?
But the time does not allow us to dwell on the
call and qualifications of the Gospel ministry.
4. Let me urge you, young men, in the next
place, to endeavor most carefully to find out the
intimations of Providence in regard to the husi-
ness you should follow. I have reference here
to your education, health, and place of resi-
dence. The influence of early training is felt
and acknowledged by all. It was ascertained
a few years ago, that out of one hundred and
nine theological students, ninety-seven had
either a pious father or mother, and eighty-
eight had parents both of whom were pious.
And the history of revivals of religion, and
THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSIOI^. 281
even of conversions late in life, shows that tliey
are almost all to be traced to early religious
instruction. The seed grows after having long
remained dormant. Samuel and Timothy, Au-
gustin and Doddridge, are well known examples
of parental piety giving shape to the character
of their children.
General Jackson's rio;id adherence to the
articles of reli2:ion as a matter of faith — articles
which he never allowed any one to dispute or
ridicule in his presence w^ithout rebuke, is with-
out doubt to be attributed to his mother's
catechism and influence upon him in his ear-
liest years. His aftection for his wife and re-
gard for her religious feelings are equalled only
by the veneration he had for his mother. So
strong were his convictions of the divinity of
Christ and the inspiration of the Bible, that it
was displeasing to him to hear them preached
upon. He considered it useless to argue with
a 'man that did not believe them. On one
occasion at dinner with some British officers
and others, one of his guests suggested that if
we left the Bible out of the question he could
282 THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSION
prove Ids position to be true, upon wliich the
old liero, brim^inof Ids Land down with con-
siderable violence upon the table, said : " Never
give up the Bible, sir, we can't give up the
Bible." And General Havelock's whole reli-
gious character can be easily traced to the care-
ful relio-ious training: of his mother durino* his
infantile years — perhaps to the first six years
of his life, while he was yet under his father's
roof. It was his mother's custom to assemble
her children regularly around her knees every
day, and read a portion of the Bible to them,
and pray with them, and explain religious mat-
ters to them. It was thus the English mother, in
her humble house in Kent, was educating the
British hero for Birmah, Affghanistan and In-
dia. It was there he learned those sterling
principles that gave him strength for the day
of trial. And at the first school he attended,
so remarkable were his ha1>its, that he was
nicknamed ^'' old plilos^'' that is, the philosopher.
And at nine years we see "the man of fifty-
seven through an inverted telescope." And,
of (X)urse, you must consider your health and
THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSION. 283
l)liysical qualifications for the ot'cu])ation you
propose to follow. Health and capacity to
labor and endure liave a great deal to do with
success in the world. A dumb man is not
called to be an orator, nor is one of incurable
stammering or of lungs so weak that he cannot
engage in public speaking, called to be a law-
yer or a preacher of the Gosj^el. The matter
of health is too often overlooked. It is as much
a sin to neglect the body as it is to neglect the
heart. A spendthrift of health is a suicide
where more than blood is sj)ilt. For good
health has a great deal to do with talents and
success in life, and is not without its influence
upon the realities of eternity. "Take," says
one, " a lawyer's life through, and high health
is at least equal to fifty per cent, more brain.
The credit awarded to intellect is often due to
digestion. Endurance, cheerfulness, wit, elo-
quence attain a- force and sj)lendor, with health,
which they can never approach witliout it."
You must consider, also, the ciucumstances
of tlie place where you live. Such as to which
calling or profession has the greatest opoiiii g
284 THE CHOICE or a PROFESSIOIS".
for usefulness. Where your country lias tlie
greatest need of farmers, sailors, soldiers, me-
chanics, mercliants, physicians, lawyei's or min-
isters of the Gospel, and which calling or pro-
fession is the most crowded. As those born
inland in farming districts are apt to become
ftirmers, and those born on the seashore are
more apt to become seafaring men, so you
should consider whether your residence near
an institution of learning and opportunities to
obtain a liberal education, are not jorovidential
allotments, directing you to literary pursuits
and some one of the learned professions. While
one's youthful tastes or inclinations are not
always infallible as to what kind of business is
to be followed, still they should be most care-
fully considered. For, as the best medical
treatment is to work with nature in her strug-
Ldes to throw off ailments and overcome ob-
structions to her healthful funotions, so as far
as possible we should try by education and
our daily pursuits to suji^^le^^^ent nature, and
help her to her highest aspirations. As our
fallen nature is sinful, we must be careful how
Tin: CHOICE of a pkofessio:n". 285
Ave }'iel(l ourselves to our natural preferences
in clioosing a business for life. That sucli
youtliful preferences are not always riglit, is
clearlv proven from tlie fact tliat tliey are not
always successful, nor are they abiding. On
the contrary, they are .found to be spasmodic
or fickle. A sliii:ht chansfe of circumstances, or
the flight of a few years, or the presence of a
new acquaintance, or the absence of an old one,
sometimes creates new tastes, or awakens just
as strong preferences for another pursuit as
were entertained a short time ago for a totally
different one. Such j^references are often mere
fancies. They are often delusions. The point
should be decided upon j^rinciple. Numerous
cases, and of distinguished men, too, could be
» given, in Avliich it was found after years of
trial, and a great loss of time and energy, that
a mistake had been made in following these
natural preferences in youth, and a radical
chamxe was made. There can be no doubt but
that sometimes it is the duty of a man to
change his business or his profession. This
cannot be wrong in itself, but on the contrary,
286 THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSION.
from liealtli or other circumstances it may be-
come a duty. A few years' experience may be
necessary to develop wliat pursuit or kind of
business we are the best fitted for. It is veiy
evident either that some .men have made a mis-
take in their calling, or else they are iit for no
business at all. They are^ either dn the wrong
business or they do not attend to the right
business in the right way, and in either case,
the sooner they correct their mistakes the bet-
ter for themselves and others. They are so
fretful and unhappy, and attend to their calling
so badly, that it is clear they are in the wrong
place, or else not fitted for any place. Our
doctrine on this subject is, that many men are
attempting to do what Providence never called
them to do, and that they ought to change eithei*
their calling or their manner of attending to
it. For we hold that it is the duty of every
Christian man and woman to strive to excel
in whatever they profess to do. If a Christian
Avoman has to nurse, or spin, or sew, or teach,
the should aim at beins^ the best nurse and the
best worker. And if a Christian gains his liv
THE CHOICE OF A PE0FESSI01S-. 287
ing by gardening or making boots, let liim
have the best vegetables and make the best
boots in market. And so of every calling, from
the humblest to the hii^'hest. That such should
be our aim as a matter of policy and gain, may
be taken for granted ; but that is not enough.
Christians are to covet earnestly the best* gifts.
It is their duty to seek superior excellence..
They are to do more than publicans and sin-
ners. And on this point, also, two remarks
seem to be called for ; firsts as a general rule in
our country, young people commence business
or begin the duties of life too early. This has
a serious and most baneful effect upon them in
after life. It destroys the enthusiasm, cheer-
fulness and vigor that should iij)hold them
in mature years. It is better that our boys
live in less luxury, or even without some com-
forts at home, than that they should begin to
make and spend money in their minority.
And secondly^ it is a common fault in our
day that our youth are so conceited, self-willed
and obstinate, that they will not take the ad-
vice of jiarents, teachers, and friends of
288 THE CHOICE of a professiois".
advanced years, as to wliat kind of business
tliey sliould engage in. Parents, friends, and
pastors may not always kno^v " what manner
of child this should be f yet surely every
young man should examine well his endow-
ments and qualifications, and let the multitude
of years sj)eak to him, and age give him coun-
.sel, in deciding what business or j)rofession his
special gifts and circumstances may point out
to him as his pursuit for life. Again, it will
hardly be doubted that the moral tendency
of the business w^e are deliberating about should
be well considered ; such as its liability to
temptations to wrong doing, or its adaptation
to promote our intellectual and spiritual im-
provement. AYe are not, indeed, to seek only
our own interests ; and yet we cannot help i^ro-
moting our own highest good by choosing the
right profession, and the riglit profession for us
is the one in wdiich we can get and do the most
good. Some callings afford greater opportuni-
ties than others for reading, and others are
more favorable for the development of the reli-
gious sentiment. For although the sweat of
THE CHOICE OF A PEOEESSION. 289
tlie man at tlie plougli or at the anvil is just as
lionorable as the sweat of the lawyer at the bar,
or of the statesman in the forum, still the
ploughman and blacksmith have not the oppor-
tunities for mental cultivation that belonor to
o
the lawyer or senator. The toil of the mer-
chant may be as honest, and as pious, and as
acceptable to God as that of the pastor, but it
is not so favorable for the genial studies and
pursuits of cultivated minds. And it is no
doubt because secular business, trade, and the
learned professions are so engrossing that they
do not allow or encourage that devotion to the
culture of the mind and heart, that are requi-
site to eminence, that so few, comparatively so
few are found earnestly pursuing secular avo-
cations, that are at the same time eminent for
their piety. Ordinarily eminent piety is pre-
ceded by, and still nurtured with much prayer
and special attention to the reading of God's
word. And this requires time and energy.
Aud hence we should expect more piety, eleva-
tion of thousrht, and culture of intellectual
powers in the ministry than in any other em-
13
290 THE CHOICE or a peofessiois".
ployment. As the subjects with whicli tlie
teachers of Christianity are familiar are the
most momentous that can occupy the human
mind, so we naturally expect that a devotion to
them would quicken and strengthen the intel-
lect and improve the heart. The greatest ene-
mies of human happiness are the trinity of
human depravity : " the world, the flesh, and
the devil." And it is perfectly clear that some
callings are more beset by these than others.
The love of ease is natural to the carnal mind.
Sloth is a dangerous foe to all improvement.
To hide our talent in a napkin is to betray our
trust and dishonor our creation. And so also
vanity and ambition, or the inordinate desire
for fame, has slain its thousands. " How can
you believe," said our Lord, "which seek
honor one of another, and seek not the
honor that- cometh from God only ?" Let
not the mse man glory in Ms wisdom; nei-
ther let the mighty man glory in his might ;
let not the rich man glory in his riches ; but
let him that glorieth, glory in this that he
understandeth and knoweth me, that I am the
THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSIOIS'. 291
LoKD wliicli exercise loving kindness, judg-
ment, and rigliteonsness, in tlie earth : for in
these things I delight, saith the Lord. Jere-
oniali ix. 24.
The love of the things of this world grows
by indulgence. The root of all evil is the love
of money, " which while some coveted after,
they have erred from the faith, and pierced
themselves through with many sorrows." ^' They
that will be rich, fall into a temptation and a
snare, and into many hurtful and foolish lusts,
which drown men in destruction and perdi-
tion." Observation fully confirms these texts
of Scripture as to the blinding, absorbing, de-
moralizing, dangerous tendency of the inordi-
nate love of the world. It is important, there-
fore, that a young man in choosing his business
for life, and in the prosecution of it, should
well consider the temptations it will present to
him, and the hindrances that may be connected
with it in the way of his mental and moral im-
provement. And the more so, because it is by
these professional avenues, adaptations or pecu-
liar tendencies that the evil one always makes
292 THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSIOIn'.
his most deadly assaults. Is tlie calling, tlien,
you are about to choose favorable or otherwise
to your mental growth and spiritual welfare, or
is it one that will deprive you of such advan-
tages, and expose you to idleness, luxury or
vice ? Will it help or hinder you in your way
to heaven ? If then, as Ave have seen, our ovv n
personal* well-being is not inconsistent with our
duty to our fellow men and our Creator, but is
a part of it, it must also be true that virtue
should be its own reward, at least in part, in
this world ; and that we should seek for glory,
honor, and immortality in the world to come.
It is according to the Scriptures that we should
have respect unto the recompense of rewards.
Moses ig commended for this. It is given as a
proof of his heroic faith, that " he refused to be
called the son of Pharaoh's daughter ; choosing
rather to suffer affliction with the peoj^le of
God, than to enjoy the pleasures of sin for a
season: esteeming the reproach of Christ
greater riches than the treasures in Egypt : for
he had respect unto the recompense of the re
wardP Several points are revealed in the
THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSION. 293
Word of God as to tlie rewards of eternity, tliat
should be well considered.
1. Tliey are to be in proportion to tlie trials
of tliis life. We understand our Lord to teacL.
this principle when inculcating self-denial as at
the very beginning of our discipleship. "If
any man will come after me, let him deny him-
self, and take up his cross, and follow me. For
whosoever will save his life shall lose it, and
whosoever will lose his life shall find it. Then
Peter said, Lo, we have left all and followed
thee. And he said unto them, Verily, I say
unto you, there is no man that hath left house,
or parents, or brethren, or Avife, or children, for
the kingdom of God's sake, who shall not re-
ceive manifold more in this present time, and
in the world to come life everlastincr." And
so Paul teaches, when he says : " For I reckon
that the sufferings of this present time are not
woi-thy to be compared with the glory that
shall be revealed in us ?" " Rejoice, inasmucli
as ye are partakers of Christ's sufferings ; that,
when his gloiy sliall be revealed, ye may be
29.1: THE CHOICE OF A TROFESSION.
glad also witli exceeding joy." " A witness of
the sufferings of Christ, and also a ])ai'taker of
the glory that shall be revealed." '' Yea, doubt-
less, and I count all things but loss for the ex-
cellency of the knoAvledge of Christ Jesus, my
Lord ; that I may know him, and tlie power of
his resurrection, and the fellowship of his suf-
ferings, being made conformable unto his death ;
if, by any means, I may attain unto the resur-
rection of the dead." The rule is, If we suffer
WITH Christ we shall iieigis: with in^r. The
enjoyment of heaven will be the more glorious
because of the trials we pass through. " That
the trial of your faith, being much more pre-
cious than of gold that perisheth, though it be
tried w4th. fire, would be found to praise, and
honor, and glory at the appearing of Jesus
Christ." " What are these Avhich are arrayed
in white robes ? and whence came they ? And
he said unto me, These are they which came
out of great tribulation, and have washed their
robes, and made them white in the blood of the
Lamb. Therefore are they before the throne
THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSION. 295
of God, and serve liiin day and night in liis
temple : and lie that sitteth on his throne shall
dwell among tlieni."
2. Tlie rewards of eternity are to he a/xxrrd-
ing to every mau^-s- lahor done in the hody. This
la})or njiist he, however, fi-orn pure motives,
from love to (lod and man. The love of Christ
must constrain us to the consecration of our-
selves to his cause. The great Calvin, in ex-
pounding the text: "They that be wise shall
shine as the In'iLchtness of the firmament; and
they that turn many to righteousness as the
stars forever ;" says it means, " that the sons of
(jrod who, being devoted entirely to God and
ruled by the spirit of wisdom, point out the
way of life to others, shall not only be saved
themselves, but shall possess surpassing glory,
far beyond anything which exists in this world.
Hence we gather the nature of true wisdom to
consist in submitting ourselves to God in sim-
[>le teachaldeness, and in manifesting the addi-
tional, quality of carefully promoting the sal-
vation of our brethren." The rule is that in
bestowing eternal life upon his followers,' a
296 THE CHOICE or A PROFESSIOIT.
special reward is attaclied to special gifts and
services. Our Lord accordingly promised to
the apostles, in view of tlie extraordinary trials,
sufferings and labors tLrougli which they were
called to go, that they should " sit on twelve
thrones judging the twelve tribes of Israel."
Paul was, therefore, authorized to say, when he
contemplated the end of his mortal race, con-
flict and labor here below : " Thenceforth there
is laid up for me a. crown of righteousness,
which the Lord, the righteous judge, shall give
me at that day : and not to me only, but unto
all them also that love his appearing. The
plain meaning of which is, that a special crown
was prepared for him in proportion to his
labors performed out of love to Christ. Paul,
in his letter to the Corinthians (1 Cor. iii.),
expressly tells us that, neither is he that plant-
eth anythingj neither he that watereth : but
God that giveth the increase. Now he that
planteth and he that watereth are one: and
every man sliall receive Ms own reivard accord-
ing to Ids own lahor. And then he ex^^jlains,
that according to the chai-acter of a man's work,
THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSIOlSr. 297
wlietlier it be gold, silver, precious stones, or
\yo^d, liay, stubble — wlietlier it abide the trial
by ii]*e, for the fire shall try every man's works
of what sort it is — so sliall lie receive a reivard.
And every man sliall receive Ids own reward
according to Ids own lahor, Not according to
talents, gifts or station ; not according even to
pur successors, but according to our labors, we
are to be rewarded. Diversity of gifts in unity
of purpose is God's law in all his works. Min-
isters and teachers and persons in all pursuits
have different gifts, and different services to
perform, and the rule by which they are to be
rewarded at last, is according to their labor.
It is a great comfort to see the fruit of our
labors now, but if not, our record is on high.
In one of the publications of the A, S, S. Union,,
there is an allegory to the following effect. We
do not attempt to recite it word for w^ord, but
p'ive an abrido^ment of it from one of the an-
nual reports of the late Eev. Dr. Van Rensse-
laer, of the Board of Education, to tlie General
A^ssembly. Indeed, we are indebted to this
report for suggesting this discourse, and for
298 THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSIOIST.
many hints and tlioughts, all of wlilch we have
freely used. The allegory is called " T^ie
Crow2^ Koom." a pious yoiing man of prom-
ising talents and prospects felt imj)ressed with
the idea that it was his duty to preach the
Gospel. He was exceedingly reluctant, how-
ever, to devote himself to the service of God in
the Gospel of his Son. The struggle was,
continued for months. His worldly ambition
and wealthy and fashionable friends ^pleading
on the one side,' and the voice of his soul seem-
ing to rise up from its depths, saying, "Woe is
me, woe is me, if I preach not the Gospel." At
last he thought he had rightly settled the
question. He determined not to jDreach the
kingdom of God, engaged in business, and his
immediate success he considered as a j)roof that
he had done ricclit. He soon became a man of
large wealth. 'Nor did he forsake the cause of
Christ. He maintained his Christian profes-
sion, and was punctual at the prayer meeting,
and gave liberally at the missionq^ry concerts.
After being at a large meeting in behalf of
missions, he returned home, and soon fell asleep,
THE CHOICE OF A professio:n-. 299
when lie dreamed tliat an angel of great glory
a2:)proaclied him and invited him to follow liim.
He did so until lie readied the gate of a stu-
pendous edifice. After entering its apartments,
whose dimensions and mao-nificence amazed
and awed him, " This," said his angel guide, " is
the Croton Hooni^ and here you see deposited
the cro^vns which await the faithful when they
have finished their course." And oh, what a
sight was there presented to his eyes ! Ar-
ranged in glittering rows, one above the other,
suspended from the lofty dome and piled up
on every side, were innumerable crowns of
every size, form and device. Some of these
were simple circlets or crescents of gold, con-
taining here and there a single jewel; others
more thickly sprinkled with brilliants or stud-
ded with gems. Long and earnestly did he
look at the glories that surrounded him until
his guiding angel reminded him that it was
time to return, and began to move out, but
said, " Thy crown is yet to be won." But being
reluctant to leave, his eyes were at last fixed
upon a crown which he had not before ob-
300 THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSIOT^-
served. It was gorgeous witli brilliants, and
as lie gazed npon it a strange fascination seized
him. He trembled as lie gazed, and tears fell
from Lis eyes as lie exclaimed : O earth, earth !
what canst thou offer like this ? Tell me, oh,
thou shining one ! for what favored being can
this glorious crown be reserved — ^who shall be
worthy to wear it at last ? " Alas ! alas !" said
the angel, "I know not ! once, indeed, it seemed
ready for thee, but thou knewest not the time
of thy visitation. Thou didst turn away from
yonder glittering crown. I know not who
shall stand in thy lot, or wear that resplendent
diadem !" Startled, he awoke from his slum-
bers. The scales fell fi'om his eyes, and he saw
how he "had temj^orized with duty, and had
offered gold^ gold, GOLD instead of the living
sacriiice. How he had allowed the pleasures
and gains of earth to delude him. He strug-
gled long and earnestly for forgiveness. He
now prayed, not *'I pray thee have me ex-
cused," but in the very words of our text,
" Lord, what wilt thou have me to do ?" " Here
am I,'' said he, " send me now, O Lord, if thou
THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSIOl^. dOl
canst after so mucli nnwortliiiiess and so great
neglect of tluty." Bitterly, most bitterly did
lie mourn over liis folly and repent Lis waste
of talents, loss of time and misuse of precious
gifts. But at length, finding peace, and be-
coming assured tliat it was liis duty to preacli
the Gospel, he took up his cross and went forth
as Christ's ambassador. Domestic ties and
many worldly cares were now a serious hin-
drance in his way, but by divine grace he was
enabled to strive for the prize set before him,
and to do a great and blessed work in the ser-
vice of his gracious Master. Young men^ let
me beseech you to choose an occupation that
will bear the scrutiny of the last day. Con-
"sider well the principles laid down arid briefly
alluded to or illustrated in this discourse.
Your happiness now and through a boundless
eternity, as well as that of those whose life and
being may be bound up in yours, depends very
much upon your making choice of the right
kind of an employment or pursuit in life.
Choose, then, your calling in the fear of God,
and so pursue it as to show that you are called
302 THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSION.
of God to it, and tliat in it you are seeking to
please Him who is invisible, and to gain glory,
honor and immortality in his presence. Make
your choice deliberately and according to high
and noble principles, and then pursue your em-
ployment boldly, conscientiously, devotedly,
persistently. A wrong choice, or a negligent
pursuit even of the right calling, is a life of
monotony for your own souls, a palsy in your
own homes, and a misfortune or an injustice to
others ; while, on the other side, he that is wise
is wise not only for himself, but for others — a
wise choice and a wise pursuit is the life of the
crowned and reigning spirit. Tliy crown., young
man, is yet to he won. God help you to gird
on your armor, and help you to win it. It is a
resplendently glorious crown, to wduch your
age, your country and your God calls yoU. It
is for you to become a light always moving in
the creation of God, in a wider and a higher
sphere — discovering always, illuminating al-
ways, gaining every hour in strength for bolder
and more lofty flights, yet bowed down every
liour into deeper humility ; sure of being always
THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSIOIC. 303
and irresistibly in an upward progress ; liappy
in what you have achieved, happier still in the
greatness of the w^ay before you, and happiest
still at the close of life, when all other names
of dearest ties may fade from the memory, to
be refreshed by the recollection of that name
which is above every name, happiest at the
close of life, when the ri^rht hand bele and extreme dano^er,
either by severe oppression, or by a sudden
assault upon his person, or by some unjust pro-
cess of law. As for example, if a person is con-
demned by false witnesses, and it is wdthin our
poAver to furnish the proofs of the perjury of
the witnesses and the . innocence of the party
accused, then it is our solemn duty to do it.
Among the Jews, it was allowed that if any
j)erson could offer anything in favor of a j)i'i-
soner, after sentence was passed, it was his duty
to do so before the execution. According to
the Mishna it was usual when a man was led
to execution, for a crier to go before him and
[)roclaim : " Tliis man is no^v going to be exe-
cuted for such a ciime, and such and such are
witnesses against him : Whoever knows him to
be innocent, let him come forth and make it
appear'' Quoted by Dr. Doddridge.
306 EESPOIN^SIBILITT FOE THE
It is admitted tliat if any one is attacked by
force, and liis property and life are in danger,
it is our duty to iiy to liis assistance, if tliere
is a greater probability that we can save liis
life than tliat we should lose our own in the
attempt to save him. Thus, if we see any one
through ignorance or thoughtlessness exposing
himself to danger, or about to walk over a pre-
cij)ice, or to fall into the hands of thieves, or to
take a wrong road, or get into any other dis-
tress, as strangers, travellers, and ships at sea,
and all such cases ; then, though it might be
with ex23ense, toil and trouble to ourselves, and
even with great difficulty and i3eril, and with-
out any reward or even return of gratitude,
still it is our duty, because of the great bonds
of human brotherhood, and for the love of God
the great Father of mankind, to hasten to their
help and deliverance. Among the Egy]3tians,
" to be the accidental witness of an attempt to
murder, without endeavoring to prevent it, was
reckoned a capital offence, which could only be
palliated by bringing proof of absolute ina-
bility to act. To be jpresent when any one
SALVATION OF OUE FELH)W MEX. 30Y
inflicted a personal injury on another without
interfering, was tantamount to being a party to
the eyil done, and was punishable according to
the extent of the assault." *
And if the nejilectinQ; of the natural liyes
and estates of our fellow men be so highly
criminal, it must be much more heinous in the
sight of God, to permit the ruin of their charac-
ter, or the defamation of their families, or the
perdition of their souls, without doing eyery-
thing ii^ our j)ower to saye them from being
drawn unto death and slain by the sword of
eternal justice.
Secondly. It is supposed in the text, that they
w^ho neglect to deliyer those that are drawn
unto death and are ready to be slain, are
prompt to excuse themselyes for this neglect.
And this readiness to offer excuses is eyidence,
jivst^ of a consciousness of guilt ; and secondly^
of hayino; offered yiolence to the best feelino;s
of human nature. For our first im2)ulse on see-
ing distress, is to endeayor to relieye it. Our
hearts then leap into our bosoms, and we are
* "Ancient Egypt," by the Carters, vol. 1., p. 80.
308 EESPONSIBILITY FOE THE
ready to run to tlieir relief; butwlien cold and
selfish calculation enters into tLe lieart, then we
forbear. And here is the force of the terms — -
if thou forbear to deliver tliem — that is, if thou
check, or restrain, and hold back from doing
what your heart prompts ; then " he that pon-
dereth the' heart, and keepeth thy soul, doth
not he know it? And shall he not render to
every man according to his works V
Thirdly. All such excuses, however, are vain.
They are unavailing. If we succeed ii:w excus-
ing: ourselves to ourselves and to our fellow men,
it is a trifling matter. It is a light thing to be
judged of man's judgment; he that judgeth
thee is the Lord ; and he pondereth the heart ;
he weisrhs in a most accurate balance, all its
most secret sentiments. He that keepeth thy
soul, doth he not know it ? His are all thy
ways, even to the deep thoughts of thine
heart; and he will render to every man ac-
cording: to his works.
Human laws may not punish for the neglect
of our own or of the souls of our fellow men.
The grand jury may not bring in an indict-
SALVATION OF OUIl lELLOW MEN. 309
iLieiit for profane swearing, or for drunkenness,
nor for destroying the liabits of onr young men,
or for adultery and fornication, and lying and
corrupting our })ul)lic morals. It may be the
police cannot prevent men from exercising their
ingenuity in decoying the innocent and delud.-
ing the unwary stranger. There may be no
statute against the omission of duty to the souls
of men. The laws of the land may not be able
to 2^nnish for the sins of the heart, or to enforce
filial piety and love to God, and charity to our
fellow men, still he that trieth the reins of the
heart, knoweth all these things. And besides,
there is the common law of humanity, the writ-
ten law of benevolence, engraved on the hu-
man heart and j^roclaimed from the statute
book of heaven, requiring us to deliver those
that are drawn unto death and are ready
to be slain, and the supreme law-giver will
render at last to every one according to his
w^orks.
The doctrine raised from this explanation of
tlie text is, that there is a great eespoxsi-
BILITY resting UPON US TO DESIRE AND LABOR
310 EESPOXSIBILITY FOR THE
EARNESTLY FOR THE Sx^LVATIOTT OF OUR FELLOW
MEX And tliis view of tlie text implies,
1. That our fellow men are in danger ; and
that the wicked, the impenitent, and ungodly
are in a dans^erous condition is clear from the
Word of God. This danger is pointed to by
the words : " If thou forbear to deliver them
that are drawn unto death, and those that are
ready to be slain."
Drawn iinto cleatJi — ready to he slain^ are
fearful words. And all the more fearful when
we remember that it is of the soul rather than
of tlie body that they are spoken. Have you
ever seriously considered what is meant by the
slaying of the soul — by the death of the soul ?
What is the death of the soul ? Is there, in-
deed, any reach of the human mind so capacious
and all penetrating as to apprehend what it is
to be lost ? If eye hath not seen, nor ear heard,
nor heai't of man conceived, what are the joys
of heaven : so neither hath eye seen, nor ear
heard, nor heart of man conceived what is
meant by the portion of. the finally impenitent ;
the cup of trembling and wrath which an om
SALVATION OF OUR FELLOW MY.^. 311
nipotent hand compels tliem to drink, because
they rejected offered mercy and despised the
free grace of God. Weeping and wailing, and
ernasliino; of teeth, and outer darkness and ban-
ishment from 'the presence and glory of God,
are some of the terms by which the doom of
the wicked is described in the holy Scriptures.
But, oh, situation how dismal !
" Dungeon horrible on all sides round
As one groat furnace flam'd, yet from these flames
No light, but rather darkness visible
Serv'd only to discover sights of woe,
Regions of sorrow, doleful sliades, where peace
And rest can never dwell, hope never comes
That comes to all ; but torture without end
Still rages, and a fiery deluge, fed
With ever-burning sulphur unconsum'd."
And }■ et, is it not true tliat multitudes around
us are living in sin and dying out of the present
world every day without any preparation for a
better life ? Does not a thoughtful survey of
our streets confirm the Scripture view, that the
wide gate and the broad way wliich leads to
death are crowded, and that there are but few
312 EESPOXSIBILITY YOU THE
in tlie narrow way wliicli leads to life ? Is it
not true if we judge from our fellowMuen at
large as tliey pass and repass before us in tlieir
thousand thousand ways of conflict, suffering,
living and dying, that Christ's fiock is small
and the devirs herd is large ? If the destroy-
ing angel was commissioned to j^ass over the
cities of Christendom, and commanded to smite
with, instant death all those who dwell in
houses not marked with the blood of the great
Paschal Lamb slain from the foundation of the
world to take away its sin, to slay the first-born
of all those families that do not call upon God
by morning and evening prayer — who do not
reverence the holy name of the God of Israel —
who do not keep his day holy, and who do not
take up their cross and follow Christ — brethren,
would not loud and long wailings rise up from
many of our dwellings if such a test as this
were now applied in order that it might be
seen w^ho is on the Lord's side and who is not ?
It is fearful to move over a field of battle, when
the missiles of destruction are flying, rolling,
rattling and crashing in every direction ; or to
SALYATIOZS OF OUU FELLOW ME:^-. 313
go tlirougli a populous city wLen an epidemic
is prevailing, and deatli rides on every breeze ;
l)ut, tliere is no ejDidemic like sin. It kills botk
body and soul, and kills beyond tlie grave.
Tliere is no deatli like eternal deatli, wkick is
the second deatk — a deatk forever in the ex-
tremest agonies of dying, and yet can never die.
AYith all the allowances which that charity can
make which believeth all things and hopeth all
things, is it not true, that the marks of eternal
death are on many of our fellow-men — that is,
they are ungodly, impenitent, self righteous,
disobedient, utterly careless or indifferent about
religion, or they are profane, prayerless, im-
moral, vicious ? And on others on whom the
marks of evil doing are not displayed, there
are, however, no signs of spiritual life. They
are not seeking to be saved. They are not
given to prayer. They do not love God, nor
obey his Son Jesus Christ. And if the right-
eous scarcely be saved, where shall the ungodly
and the sinner appear ? What shall be the
end of those who know not God, and obey not
the Gospel of his Son? O that the dreadful
U
314 EESPONSIBILITY FOR THE
contagion of sin could be destroyed ! But
alas ! it is an epidemic that ragetli everywliere
in our fallen world, and ragetli evermore win-
ter and summer, seed time and harvest. It
never abates. .Sin abounds and deatli reigns.
"For death from sin, no power can separate."
Xow a few considerations will make it plain,
that the impenitent are in danger of eternal
death. First^ they are in a great measure care-
less on the subject of religion. Intelligent,
energetic, whole-hearted on all other subjects,
they are indifferent to this the first and great-
est concern of every human being. Their care-
lessness may arise from a variety of causes, but
in every case it is dangerous. Some think
themselves wise and increased in goods, while
in fact they are stupid, ignorant and miserably
poor. Their prosjDerity is either a mere fancy,
or it is the verdure of the hill-side just below
the volcanic crater, whose groanings are already
to be heard as notes of preparation for the over-
flowing flood of fire that will sweep all belov/
to destruction. They are sick, but think them-
selves in health. They will die, if no physician
SALVATION OF OUR FELLOTV MEN. 315
saves tliem ; but tliey do not feel tlieir need of
one. Tlieir carelessness is tlie calm that pre-
cedes the storm. It is a calm produced by ig-
noi'ance or stu2:)idity, if not by an entire with-
drawing of divine influence. Indifferent, uncon-
cerned, no mind or heai-t for eternal realities ;
how can they be saved ? The Lord's day they
do not keep holy. Their backs are turned
upon the Lord's house, where his word is
preached ; and their Bible, the gift of a parent,
or of a " sister dear " who has passed into the
skies, if not lost, is at least not read ; nor do
they now repeat " Our Father " and lift up
their hearts to God as they were taught to do
in prayer in the home of their youth. LIow,
then, can they be saved who neglect so great a
salvation ? Those who despised the law of
Moses died without mercy ; but to despise the
Gospel is a greater crime, and deserves a great-
er punishment. Those who seek not mercy
now, according to tlie Gospel, shall never have
it. This is the acceptable time; this is the
day of salvation. If it be neglected, there is
then no more hope. But, secondly^ our impeni-
316 EESPOKSIBILITY FOE THE
tent fellow-men are in great danger, because
the manner of tlieir lives is contrary to God's
laws, and therefore exposes tliem continually
to his righteous judgments. Some men are
content with a mere name for decency and
good manners ; others are amiable and correct
and well to do in the world ; and others even
have the form of godliness ; and yet all these
are without true piety. Some even draw nigh
to God with their mouth, and honor him with
their lips, whose heart is far from him. Then
there are others who are living in oj^en sin.
They glory in their shame. Their sins are
open beforehand, going before to the judgment,
and some men's sins follow alter. The works
of the flesh, which are the works of the wicked
One, are manifest, which are " adultery, forni-
cation, uncleanness, ^vrath, murder and drunk-
enness." And they that do such things show
too clearly that they are of their father, the
devil, and the lusts of their father they will do.
They are servants of sin, and living after the
flesh, they must die — For tlie tuirigliteous can-
not inlierit the Mngdom of God. Thirdly. An-
SALVATIOX OF OUR FELLOW IS'LEN. 317
otlier proof of the imminency of tlie danger that
threatens our im]3enitent fellow men, is that
great and fundamental errors are abroad in the
world — and many are led away from the truth
as it is in Jesus, and many even substitute
these false doctrines and damnables heresies, as
an apostle has called them, for the vital doc-
trines and true views of our holy religion.
They receive as and/w' the precious Gospel of
Christ, what is in fact another Gospel. The
fancies and traditions and commandments of
men are substituted for the commandments of
the living God. A "will-worship" is put in
the place of the worship God has appointed.
Human means are made sufficient without the
atonement of the Son of God. Now it cannot
be true that all religions are equally good. It
cannot be true that a man is not responsible
for what he believes. It cannot be true that it
makes no difference what a man believes if he
is only sincere. If this were so, then there
would be no difference between right and wrong.
Nor could there be any standard of right and
wrong. But we know there is such a differ-
318 EESPONSIBILITY FOE THE
ence, and tliat tliere is sucli a standard, and tlie
proof of this is tlie universal conscience, con-
fession and practice of tlie human race. And
we know also that as a man thinketh in his
heart, so is he. We know that truth appre-
hended is a principle, and that a principle ap-
prehended excites an emotion, a desire, a will,
and leads to action, so that from belie vino-
comes thinking, and then doing. Truth in
itself is infinitely precious. It is separated by
an infinite space from error. And while truth
is saving, error is destroying. It does, there-
fore, make a great difi*erence what a man be-
lieves, for without his intending it, or perceiv-
it, his conduct is moulded by his belief And
besides, a man is as much accountable for the
doctrines he believes, the sentiments he > holds,
the opinions he utters, as he is for the example
he sets or the actions he performs. Nor does
a man's good intentions excuse him for wrong
doing, when he could have known what was
right by taking heed to the will of God. Nor
doofi a man's sincerity in l^s belief save him
fro-a responsibility. A man's sincere belief
SALVATION OF OUR FELLOW MEN. 319
tliat his neiglibor was honest does not save
liim from the loss he sustains when that neigh-
bor runs away with his money. Nor does a
man's perfect honesty save him from death, if
by mistake he has taken poison that kills
instead of the powder that was to heal. It is
our duty to know and believe the truth, and
nothing but the truth. And for this very pur-
pose God has endowed us with reason, intel-
lectual powers, speech and the means of know-
ledge, and has revealed his will for our salva-
tion. It is by the truth we are begotten to a
lively hope, and made free from sin. A man's
life cannot be in the rio;ht, if his faith be in the
wrono; ; for his conduct will flow from wTono-
motives and aims — his actions will be the pro-
ducts of erroneous principles, and however sin-
cere, error never can produce right.
Since, therefore, it is ]3hilosoj)hical as well as
scriptural that some errors are " damnable," it
is of the greatest importance that men should
have clear and proj)er views of the divine cha-
racter — of the law of God and of themselves —
of its reach, spirituality and requirements, and
320 EESPOl^SIBILITY FOK THE
of themselves as guilty in tlie siglit of God, and
of their need of Christ as a Saviour, and be
able to apprehend his willingness and suffi-
ciency as a Redeemer. And since, according to
the Word of God, we cannot be saved without
iioliness — without beins: born ao-ain — without
I'epentance and faith, and since so many are
living around us who give no evidence of re-
pentance toward God, nor of faith in Jesus
Christ, is not the conclusion forced upon us,
tliey are draivn tmto deaths and are ready to he
slain? What becomes of the thousands of
souls that leave our mortal shores every year ?
Whither do they go \ What reasonable, scrip-
tural hope is there that the majority of those
who are now intent on gain or pleasure, and
elbowing their way through our streets, will be
saved when they die ? Around how many of
their dying couches will be gathered a j)raying
band to commit the departing spirit to Jesus
Christ! Ah! is it not enough that they die
in wretchedness — that they die under the stare
of strange faces, and among a people they have
not known ? Is it liot enouo-h that no mother.
SALYATIOIsr OF OUK FELLOW MEN. 321
sister or wife will be there to watcli tlieir last mo-
ments witli angel love, and when death has done
its work, to close the eye and commit the body
to dust — to strange dust, where sleej) not the
bones of fathers and their kindred ? Is this all ?
Very far from it. This is only the death of the
body. But —
'Tis not the whole of life to live,
Nor all of death to die ;
Beyond this vale of tears
There is a life above,
Unmeasured by the flight of years,
And all that life is love.
There is a death whose pang
Outlasts the fleeting breath ;
Oh, what eternal horrors hang
Around the second death !"
2. Let us consider next, some of the excuses
usually made or offered against our res])onsi-
hility for tlie salvation of our felloiv men.
F'irst. It is sometimes criven as a reason for
neglecting the spiritual welfare of those around
us, that we do not know, and that indeed it is
not our business to know anything of their spi-
ritual state. Now, if by this is meant that every
14*
322 EESPONSIBILITY FOR THE
man must stand or fall before liis own master:
that every one lias to appear before God for
himself and not for another, and stand alone in
the judgment as to his own individuality; — if
by this is meant, that we are to mind our own
business, and not meddle with the affairs of
others, and that every one must work out his
own salvation with fear and trembling, then it
is all right. But if by this is really meant that
we are ignorant of the dangerous condition of
our impenitent fellow men, and that we are ex-
cused from feeling any anxiety or from doing
anything to save their souls, then it is a wicked,
atheistic, cruel fallacy, alike contrary to com-
mon charity and Grospel fraternity. Do not
hiow that sinners as-ainst God are in dano^er of
his judgments ! And is it true, that you do
not know that the wrath of God is revealed
from heaven against all ungodliness and un-
rig:hteousness of men ? Are not our fellow men
out of Christ, living in sin, in the gall of bitter-
ness and the bondage of iniquity, dead, abso-
lutely dead in trespass and in sins ? Do you
not believe that all men are sinners against
SALVATIOX OF OUE FELLOW ]\rE]^. 323
Gocl, and tlierefore cliildren of wrath, and tliat,
as tlie Scriptures say, we must be born again,
])ecome new creatures in Christ, and have a
new heart, or we cannot see the kingdom of
heaven ? And are you not fully satisfied that
human life is frail, short and uncertain; that
ten thousand casualties and diseases are hurry-
in 2: our fellow mortals to the crates of death
and into an unchanging eternity ? And does
not the wrath of God abide on every unbeliever?
Will he not render indignation and wrath,
tribulation and anguish, upon every man who
dies in his sins impenitent, unpardoned, unre-
newed ? Ai'e not the wicked and all they that
forget God to be turned into hell ? Now, my
brethren, do you not profess to receive the
Scriptures as the Word of God ? How, then,
can you say you do not know the danger of
your fellow men who are living in sin ? Have
you not yourself fled from the wrath to come,
and do you not know that your friends who
are yet living in sin are exposed to it ? What
would become of your friend, relative, child, or
neighbor, wlio is now Cliristless, wliose heart
324 EESPO]SrSIBILITY FOE THE
has not been renewed by tlie grace of God, if
they should die this moment? Without re-
pentance, must they not perish ? Oh, say not,
you know not their danger. Kather cry mightily
to God that they may be saved, even as it were
by pulling them out of the fire.
Second. Others say they do not feel the re-
sponsibility of which we are speaking, because
they have their own affairs to attend to, and it
is the minister's business to save the souls of
men. Undoubtedly. It is true, you have your
own souls to save and your own work to do,
and it is the great business of ministers of the
Gospel to labor to save the souls of men. They
are set to watch for them as men that must
give an account to God. But then have you
no humanity ? Are you without the milk of
human kindness ? Have you no sympathy, no
fellow feeling for your own flesh and blood ?
It is the privilege and the duty of parents,
sabbath-school teachers, and preachers, to show
unto the people the way of salvation — to tell
them what they must do to be saved — but
does this excuse any of God's people from
SALYATIOIS' OF OUR FELLOW MEIST. 325
striving for the happiness of their feHow men ?
If our country is plunged into a war, and our
coasts are to be defended agaii^st a foreign, in-
vading foe, would it then be enough to say, let
the officers of the government attend to our de-
fence. They are the sons of the sword, let
them fight for us. It is their business. True
it is their business, but their duty does not
excuse you from the claims of j)atriotism and
honor. And what can the officers do without
soldiers ? They gain no victories with men of
straw, nor with cork soldiers. It is theirs to
plan, to lead, to command ; but the bone and
sinew, the hand and the heart of the soldier in
the rank and iile must be there to stand by the
undaunted leader of the host, or all is lost.
And just so it is with the ministers of the
Gospel. They are God's servants, Christ's am-
bassadors ; but they cannot do their own duty
and that of the members of God's church also.
Aaron and Hur must hold up Moses' hands
while he prays, and Joshua leads the charge
against the Amalekites. It is only thus the
Philistines can be put to flight. The apostles
326 EESPONSIBILITY FOE THE
were empowered to work miracles and to speak
with tongues, and inspired to jDreacli and write
by tlie Holy Spirit, yet we find them, and
particularly Paul, the bravest and the most
learned, most eloquent and intellectual one
among them all, repeatedly and most earnestly
asking the prayers of the Christian Churches.
Should you not then pray for your pastor, look
over his failings, "to his faults be a little
blind," and love and obey him \ If you sin-
cerely desire to remember his words, to profit
by his instructions, you must pray for him and
be a co-worker with him.
Third. Others say, we are commanded not
to cast our 'pearls before stvine^ and therefore
we must just let our fellow men alone in their
sins. And has the devil become a Bible col-
porteur ? Do I see him carrying his green bag
of books, and quoting the sacred Scriptures ?
This is not at all improl)able. He quoted the
Bible in his temptation of our Lord in the wil-
derness, and our Lord conquered by quoting
Scripture texts. The devil quoted to pervert
and lead astray ; our Lord quoted to correct liis
SALVATION OF OUE FELLOW METT. o27
wicked perversions, and to vindicate the ways
of God. It is true tliat some men do more
harm than good by being imprudent. Their
words are not fitly chosen, or the time and
place were not wisely selected. There is a zeal
that is not according to knowledge. It is pos-
sible to be overmuch zealous. [N'ew w^ine is
not to be put into old bottles. The children
of the bride chamber are not to fast w^hile the
bridegroom is wdth them. There must be mod-
eration, and some attention . to what is tit and
becoming in times and places, characters and
circumstances. But what miserable logic have
we fallen on ? Bocause a man may be impru-
dent, therefore he cannot be prudent. Because
a man may be righteous over much, therefore,
he must have no zeal at all. It is just the
same logic that Milton puts into Eve's mouth,
when she proposes to Adam to kill themselves
to keep from dying. It is as practicable a
method of doing our duty, as if we should say,
it is possible we may be choked to death by
eatluG!:, therefore, we will starve to death. Our
LorrI does indeed tell us not to cast our pearls
328 EESPOKSIBILITY FOR THE
before swine. Are all impenitent men, there-
fore, swine? Is there no way to administer
reproof for sin ? Tlie Saviour's admonition im-
plies that there is a prudent way by which to
win the souls of men, and • hence He warns us
against defeating our purposes, and bringing
upon ourselves contempt by injudicious at-
tempts. There is an of&cious j)ietism, a cant —
a long-faced whining and praying in tlie streets,
and intruding evangelical tracts and conversa-
tion upon travellers, and even into people's
houses, that is certainly unbecoming and highly
injurious ; but surely it does not follow, be-
cause of such ignorant and rude abuses, that
we should all sit still, and see our fellow men
drawn unto death and ready to be slain, and do
nothins: to save them. AVas it not Judas, who
said, what is that to us ? And was it not Cain,
who said : Am I my hrotliei^s Iceeper f Away
with all companionship with such cruel cies, away
with such miserable sophistry as this, which the
devil puts into men's heads to the everlasting
undoing of multitudes of precious souls !
FoiiHli. Others say, our fellow men are oble
SALVATION OF OUR FELLOW ME]N-. 329
to take care of tliemselves, tliey liave tlie means
of grace — tlie Lord's day, the cliurcli and tlie
minister, an open Bible, as good an education
as we Lave — they are free agents — they know
their duty ; let them attend to their own souls,
why should ^ve trouble ourselves about them ?
And truly it is a blessed thing to live in our
day — to have the mantle of Puritan, Huguenot
and Covenanter sires, who were the elect of
heaven to preach the Gospel on this continent,
and make the wilderness vocal with tlie wor-
ship of God. It is a great privilege to have
ministers of the Gosj^el among us, who show
unto men the way of salvation. It is, indeed,
our crowning excellence, that we have houses
of worship and schools for all sorts of children,
and that the word of God runs swiftly over the
land, and the printing press is casting the fruits
of the tree of life abroad over all continents,
and that a greater and a more decided Christ-
ian influence prevails over mankind than ever
before since the foundation of the world, but
still all these privileges do not excuse God's
people from personal anxiety and efforts to
330 EESPOTTSIBILITY FOE THE
advance Lis kingdom in tlie world. Tlie mere
letter of the Gospel does not convert and save.
It is not by might nor by power, saith God,
but by my s]3irit that men are converted and
saved. And God's spirit is given in answer
to prayer. His well-beloved son is to ask him
for the heathen, and then he gives the utter-
most parts of the earth to him for a possession.
And, besides, it is well known that those who
are most in need of the saving j)ower of the
Gospel do not themselves feel the need of it.
They are dying for the want of bread, but have
no appetite. Dying for the water of life, but
have no thirst for it. They must be assisted,
or they will never get into the pool when the
waters are troubled. They must be encouraged
or even led to the house of God or they will
never hear the words of everlasting truth. It
is known historically that savage nations are
never civilized by an indigenous outgrowth.
It has always been the result of something
introduced from abroad. The germ of their
civilization has always been j^l^^wted among
them by somebody else. It is j^hilosophical
SALYATIOX OF OUE FELLOW MEIST. 331
tliat it should be so, for tlie stream cannot rise
liisclier than the fountain. Like beo-ets like.
The earth is of the earth, eartliy. It is then
most clearly our duty, if God, for Christ's sake,
has oj^ened our eyes, to j)ray to him to 023en
the eyes of our fellow men, and to endeavor to
get them in the way that is most likely to
prove availing to them for such a blessing. It
is plainly our duty to furnish places of worship
and the means of Christian instruction to all
our fellow men, and then to do all we can to
induce them to profit by such opportunities.
If, by any fatal depravity, our fellow-citizens
were so obstinate that they would sit in their
counting-houses or stores, or starve to death in
their parlors rather than procure and take their
daily bread, would it not be charitable in us to
supply them, and to j)ersuade them to take it
until they should so far recover as to knovv^ its
value and seek it for themselves*? Is it not
within the j)rudent, modest reach of the influ-
ence of every one of you to induce a companion
or acquaintance who does not now attend to
religious things, to go to church and to keep
332 EESPONSIBILITY FOR THE
tlie Lord's day holy 2 Is it not within tlie
proper spliere of every one of you to J3ring
some one to tlie Sunday school, the prayer
meeting or the solemn assembly of God's peo-
j)le on the Sabbath ? One word, one page, one
prayer, one effort, with God's blessing, might
be the means of saving many souls from death.
And after all, my brethren, is it not to be
feared that the true reason of our neglecting
the souls of our fellow men is, that we do not
realize the importance of salvation — we do not
really feel enough for their souls — we do not
sufficiently realize spiritual and eternal things
— we do not apprehend the greatness of salva-
tion, nor the preciousness of the blood of
Christ. If we only apprehended what it is to
be saved, or what it is to be lost, then surely
we should do more to deliver the souls of men
from death. ■A*nd the main reason why we do
not realize these stupendous things is the want
of faith. .We want more depth of feeling, be-
cause we are ignorant and unbelieving. We
have not a deep feeling for our fellow men be-
cause we do not truly believe what the Word
SALYATIO:^ OF OUR TELLOW MEN. 333
of God says, nor do we praj' for them, and love
their souls as we should do, considering^ that
we are redeemed by the blood of the Son of
God.
3. A few reasons wliy we sliould earnestly
strive to deliver our felloiv men from death.
First. Our oivn experience slioidd teacli us to
have compassion on the soids of otliers. Were
we not in the same state by nature children of
wrath even as others ? Were we not on the
very brink of destruction, when sovereign mer-
cy found us ; and shall w^e not seek to extend
that mercy to others ? We have found him of
whom Moses in the law and the prophets did
write, and shall we not invite others to come
and behold him. We have looked to Jesus
that we might live ; and shall we not ^^oint
others to the Lamb of God that taketh away
the sins of the world ? We have tasted that
the Lord is good and gracious ; and shall we
not desire that all about us may have the same
happy experience of his grace ? We have ob-
tained the forg^iveness of sin throuofh faith in
his name; and shall we not, like David, en-
334 EESPON'SIBILITY FOE THE
cleavor to teacli transgressors liis ways? Oli,
shall we not love the souls of others, as God,
for Chiist's sake, hath loved us — shall we not
have compassion on our fellow-servants, as the
Lord continually hath pity on us ?
Second. We are so constituted that we have
much INFLUENCE UPON OUE FELLOW MEN. Noue
of US can live to ourselves. Each one has a
share of influence. All covet influence, and
yet but few realize what it is to be a man of
influence. So great, indeed, is the influence of
mind upon mind, of heart upon heart, that it
requires much zeal and prayer on our part for
our neighbor, lest we be guilty of neglecting
his soul. " Be ye not partakers of other men's
sins." If ^ve forbear to deliver them that are
drawn unto death and those that are ready to
be slain — are we not partakers in their ruin ?
Third. "We should earnestly strive to save
tlie souls of our fellow men, who are drawn
unto death and ready to be slain, because when
they are converted to God, they are made Jia/p-
l^y. The pleasures of religion are great both
objectively and subjectively. The pious are
SALVATION OF OUR FELLOW MEIT. 335
not only saved from tlie wratli to coine, ])ut
tliey enjoy at present in tlie life that now is, a
good hope through grace and the sense of par-
doned sin, a persuasion of the favor of God
toward them, a ])elief that all things are work-
ing together for their good, and that when tliey
die they shall go to heaven ; and besides, the
pious find great delight in j^rayer and praise,
in hearinof and readins: the Word of God, and
in conversation with religious people. These
are joys that satisfy and sanctify the mind, and,
compared to which, all the frothy mirth and
carnal pleasures of the wicked are mean as the
toys of children, and hurtful as the sports of
madmen.
" The men of grace have found
Glory begun below,
Celestial fruits on earthly ground
From faith and hope may grow."
Wisdom's ways are ways of pleasantness and
all her paths are paths of j)eace. Not a few
have tried l)oth the pleasures of sin and the
pleasures of religion, and have found that there
is more happiness in one hour's communion
336 EESPOIS'SIBILITY FOR THE
with God, tlian in days and montlis of sinful
indulo;ence. The love of God is slied abroad
in their liearts, which is unspeakable and full
of glory. And the end of their faith is salva-
tion — the joys and glories of the heavenly world.
The Holy Scriptures teach us that Christ is
gone to heaven to prepare mansions for his fol-
lowers — that he will come ag:ain and take them
to dwell with him where he is. The pure in
heart shall see God. Verily there is a reward
for the righteous.
, Fourth. We slioiild earnestly desire and labor
for the salvation of our fellow nien^ hecause
thereby we shall promote our own ])resent and
future happiness^ the good order and peace of
society., and the glory of God. Christians are
the salt of the earth. Ten rio^hteous men would
have saved Sodom; and, verily, except the
Lord had left us a seed, we had been as Sodom,
and been* made like unto Gomorrah. The
prayers of the pious are a greater defence to
their country than all its fleets and armies —
and that government is most likely to flourish
in which the peoj^le of God are the most nu-
SALVATIOlSr OF OUR FELLOW MEIS". 337
merous, and where trutli and rigliteousness
most abound. As tlie meanest service we can
do for Christ lias great refreshment in it, so
whatever we can do for the souls of men from
the love of God in our own hearts, increases
our own happiness. Whatever is done unto
one of the least of his disciples is done unto
himself. They that be wise shall shine as the
Ijrightness of the firmament, and they that turn
many to righteousness as the stars forever and
ever. Our blessed Lord sendeth us not on a
warfare at our own charge ; not that we can do
anything to bring God under obligations to re-
ward us ; for all we are is of free grace ; and
after we have done all, w^e are poor, unprofita-
ble servants. Still it is a great honor to be the
instrument of saving others. Such is the econo-
my of grace, that in doing good to others, we
ourselves are blessed. He that watereth the
souls of others shall himself be watered. It is
a glorious privilege to be made the means of
bringing in a revenue to God's glory, year after
year, and age after age. A good impression
made in the Sabbath school, the influence of a
15
338 EESPONSIBILITY FOR THE
Single word, or prayer, or tract, or the educa-
tion of a single youth, or the sending out of a
single missionary, and thus to preach Christ by
proxy, may be the means of bringing in a har-
vest of souls every year to the end of time.
Herein is our highest honor, that we are co-
workers with God and made like our merciful
Father, who bestoweth his gifts upon us.
What can we do to save our fellow men ?
We should cherish a deep and ardent love for
their souls ; we shoiild set them an example of
faith and holiness, and invite them to the house
of God ; provide places of worship for them,
that they may have no excuse ; we should pray
fervently for their conversion ; Paul may plant
and Apollos water, but God giveth the increase.
The love of our neighbors requires that we
should pity and help them in time of sickness,
in poverty or other temporal distress; how
much more, then, should we care for their souls
and labor earnestly to prevent their eternal
ruin ! Solicitude for the health of their bodies
and the well-being of their families and estates
is esteemed friendship and love toward our fel-
SALVATION OF OUR FELLOW MEIS-. 339
low men; Low mncli more, then, innmtely
more, should we care for their souls ; for what
is time and all its multitudinous cares to that
vast abyss of eternity, " whose end no eye can
reach ?" For what is a man profiled if he shall
gain the whole world and lose his own soul I
or what shall a man give in exchange for his
soul? Mattliew xvi. 26. It were exceedingly
important in such a city as ours, and in all new
countries, and among all classes and assem-
blages of men who are from home or cut oif
from the enjoyments of social and domestic
life, that the influence of our social nature
could be secured on the side of virtue and reli-
gion. Much good and much evil is done by
example, by conversation and by throwing
newspajDers, tracts and books in one another's
way. One moment's reading while waiting in
the parlor for the appearance of the friend
called upon, or one sight of a picture, or one
evening at a play or at the house of God, may
fix the whole future character and eternal des-
tiny of a young man or young v/oman. And
if the children of the world are gregarious, and
340 EESPONSIBILITY FOR THE
invite ana even drag each otlier into tlie drink-
ing saloon and to the theatre and to the cham-
bers of j)ollution and death ; how much more
•should Christian young men deliver them that
are drawn unto death and ready to be slain !
Perhaps no one thing destroys more men, espe-
cially young men, in our large towns and newly
settled States, and in our army and navy, than
the want of proper female society. Permanent
resident families are few in comparison with
the mass, and they are from different parts of
the world, and are engrossed with their own
Social circles, and indifferent about widening
them, and, consequently, husbands, brothers
and sons aivay from lioine^ in such a community
have but few of the enjoyments of proper
society. They- seldom have opportunities to
enjoy such refined delights, or to be strength-
ened in their purposes of well-doing by the re-
straints of sisters and mothers and pious female
friends. Oh, it is greatly to be desired among
us, that the hallowed influences of home should
be thrown once more around the masses of men
that are diir2:ii^2!: in our mountains, toilinsr in
SALVATION OF OUR FELLOW MEIST. 341
GUI' valleys, or elbowing each otlier sliarply
tlirouo'li our streets and our crowded saloons.
EEFLECTIOl^S.
First. Have we ever tliouglitfully considered
what is meant by the death of an immortal
soul ? Do we believe in its annihilation, or
the destruction of its faculties, or the weaken-
ing or stupefying of its sensibilities ? No. The
death of the soul is its separation from the de-
lights of tho pious, from the joys of heaven, the
raptures of redeeming love, and from the favor
of God, its eternal Father. And what is more,
the death of the soul is not only the loss, the
unspeakable loss of God and heaven and all
that makes heaven, but it is to be shut up in
hell, with ghosts and damned spirits scratched
and scarred with the thunderbolts of omnipo-
tent vengeance. To be excluded from heaven
is to be cast into hell. To be driven from the
glory of God is to have his wrath poured upon
the soul ; and this is its death — woe, positive,
lasting, deathless. But few of us desire to see,
342 EESPONSIBILITY FOR THE
or can bear to witness one of our fellow men
die as a terror to evil doers by tlie hand of tlie
la^yful executioner. Even wliere tlie metliod
and instrument of execution are as kind and
gentle as human ingenuity can make them, still
the spectacle is tragical — so tragical that I am
persuaded it would rend many of you to the
heart to see one of your number dragged out
into the street and executed on the scaffold or
under the guillotine. But what would this
deplorable circumstance be in comparison to
the destruction of the soul ! How much more
deeply would it pierce your very souls to see
the impenitent — ^however nearly related or by
whom besfot it will not avail — to see them led
forth to that last dreadful execution, when
Christ shall say : " As for these, mine enemies,
who would not that I should reign over them,
bring them forth and slay them before me."
Then will begin cries and wailings that shall
never end! Truly, as the apostle says, "He
that shall turn a ,sinner from the error of his
ways shall save a soul from death."
Second, Should it not excite us to more fer-
SALVATION OF OUR FELLOW MEN. 343
vent prayer and to greater exertions to save
our fellow men, w^lien we reflect tliat if tliey
perisii tliey perisli after tlie most precious pro-
visions liave been made for their salvation?
Every possible means lias been taken to pre-
vent tlieir death. There is balm in Gilead.
There is a kind and an almighty physician
there. We have the glorious Gospel of the
blessed God offering pardon and peace to all
men. The glad tidings of liberty are pro-
claimed to the captive. Health is offered to
the sick ; life to the dying. God so loved the
world, that he gave his only begotton Son that
whosoever believeth on him should not perish,
but have everlasting life. Alas ! alas ! that
men should be so stupid as to choose death
when life is freely offered. Truly the ox know-
eth its owner, and the ass his master's crib, but
my 2:>eople, with God, doth not know, doth not
consider. Alas ! that our fellow men should
so shamefully reject the messages of eternal
love, and obstinately refuse to believe on the
Son of God. The consequences of this rejec-
tion is that they shall not see life, but the
344 PwESPONSIBILITY FOIl THE
Wrath of God abidetli on tliem. Fearfully
great must be tlie depravity of that heart that
perverts all the means of grace into the savor
of death. How melancholy it is that immortal
souls should die under the Gospel ! that they
should abuse privileges so great and cut them-
selves off from the mercy of God ! Yei'ily, it
fehall be more tolerable for Tyre and Sidon, for
Sodom and Gomorrah in the day of judgment
than for the impenitent from Gospel lands.
Third. I am persuaded that it is so cruel
and naiTOW, pitiable and mean a plea — " that it
is nothing to you that others are in danger" —
that none of you intend seriously to put it
forth in abatement of your responsibility. It
is one of the noblest feelino-s known to the
human breast, that, in some measui^e, we are
our brother's keeper — that his happiness is in
part in our hands, and ours in his. A generous
sympathy that makes heart throb responsive to
heart, as shoulder to shoulder we toil up the
hill bearing the burdens of life, marks heaven's
true nol)leman. If the people shall curse him
who withholds corn in time of famine, shall
SALVATION OF OUK FELLOW MEIsT. 345
not they curse liim wlio witliliolds tlie bread
of life from tlie famishing, and the cup of the
wine of consolation from the dying, the water
of life from lips parched with the fever of sin,
and " goodness from such as are bound in afflic-
tion and iron V Yea, God himself will send a
curse, the bitter curse of Meroz, on all who
come not to the help of the Lord against the
mighty.
fourth. Are we all conscientiously engaged
in trying to deliver those who are drawn unto
death and are ready to })e slain 1 God alone
can give a new heart to our fellow men ; but
we know also that the effectual fervent j)rayer
of the righteous availeth much. Our heavenly
Father is , a God who heareth prayer. He is
overcome by the importunities of his people.
He is prevailed upon by the urgencies of the
house of Israel. Are you then a husband or a
Vvdfe, whose bosom companion knows not the
Lord ? If so, cease not to pray for him or her,
with that humble confidence that is given to
the Christian as he comes to the mercy seat.
And, if you are a parent having an ungodly, a
15*
346 EESPONSIBILITY FOR THE
far wandered and prodigal cliild, then, like
God's friend, Abraham, cry mightily unto Him,
saying, O that Islimael miglit live hefore tliee ! or
like the father in the Gospel, Lord, have mercy
upon my son. Offer j)rayer in secret, in the
house of God, and in the family. Of Abra-
ham, God says to his commendation : " I know
him that he will command his children, and his
household after him." And of Job, it is said,
he rose early in the morning and offered up ten
offerings for his ten children ; because he feared
they had sinned against God in their feasts
with each other. He cannot love the souls of
his family and fellow men much, who does not
pray for them.
Our subject addresses itself with peculiar
force to men of influence and distinction, to
heads of business houses, officers of the army
and navy, commanders of ships, em^^loyers of
others, and parents and teachers, editors and
publishers, and all who from any cause are
heads of the people, and leaders of others. It
is a feai-ful thing to live; but to live under
obligations to be useful — to live in such a city
SALVATION OF OUE FELLOW MEl^. 347
as this — to live wliere you must be active in
laying the foundations of tlie state and of tlie
cliurch, whicli are to be a blessing or a curse
for generations to come — to live and set an
exam2:)le, and be responsible for such influences,
is a fearful trust. Has God given you wealth,
or genius, or position ? And are you using
your influence to deliver those that are drawn
unto death and ready to be slain ? Are you
doing all you can to diifuse useful knowledge,
and suppress intemperance and vice, and to ele-
vate and purify public sentiment, to promote
the right and prevent the wrong, and to bring
your fellow men to a knowledge of the truth
which is in order to salvation ? Are you doing
as you would that others should do to you ?
Young men and women are around you upon
whom you can exert an influence for good — are
you doing so ? Suppose your sons and daugh-
ters away from home, situated as many of these
are that we see among us, and what would you
not give to secure for them the example and
the prayers, and the counsels and the restraints
of honest, sober, praying. Christian jpeople?
348 EESPO]!^SIBILITY FOE THE
How mucli it would gladden your lieart to
know tliat tlie people of God, in a distant city,
were tliromng around your children tliere the
softening and elevating influences of the family
circle and of good libraries, and leading them
to the house of prayer and praise ! Shall we
not then do for the young peoj)le among us, as
we would that the Christians of another city
should do for our sons and daus^hters? As
good citizens are we not bound to set a good
example, and to deliver from death those that
are drawn unto it by ignorance or intemper-
ance, or evil companions, or any other wrong
thing ? And let us remember that what we do
must be done quickly, for we are swiftly pass-
ing away. The season of harvest is short, and
when it is past it is gone forever. I ask you,
therefore, upon your conscience, and as you
shall answer uj)on a dying bed, and at the
judgment seat, are you doing all you can to
deliver those that are drawn unto death and
re^dy to be slain ? But let all impenitent men
know, that, however shoi*t of duty the mem-
bers of the church may fall, still the condem-
SALVATION OF OUR FELLOW MEN. 349
nation of their unbelief will rest upon tlieir
own lieacls. Every one must give an account
to God for himself. There is zeal enouo^h in
the church, and piety enough among its mem-
bers, to be witnesses for God that reli2:ion is a
reality. A thousand times has the conscience
of the ungodly man told him of a truth, God
is among these people. Ten thousand times
has he felt the influence of their example, and
the power of their prayers, Avhen he neither
knew nor acknowledged it. Nor will it at all
mitigate the doom of the impenitent to know
that the church failed in much of its duty.
They themselves knevf their duty, and did it
not, and though there is censure upon the
church, still tlieir condemnation is that they
would not accept of Christ; they would not
come to Him that they might have life. If
some are deluded; if some are hypocrites;
if some are unfeeling and rude : still the ques-
tion for the impenitent soul at the judgment
seat will not be concerning the conduct of
Christian professors, but Vv^hat has he him-
350 SALVATION OF OUR FELLOW MEIS".
self done in regard to tliis great salvation?
May Almighty God, of his infinite mercy, grant
you repentance unto life, through our Lord
Jesus Christ, to whom be glory for ever and
ever. Amen.
XIII
THE PIETY AND PATEIOTISM OF PRAYING FOE
Holding with the Catecliism, and according
to the interj^retation of ahiiost all commenta-
tors, Jewish, Catholic and Protestant, ancient
and modern, that the " Fifth Commandment re-
quireth the preserving the honor and perform-
ing the duties belonging to every one in their
several places and relations, as superiors, infe-
riors, or equals," we design this morning to
dwell on the Christian duty and patriotism of
praying for our civil riders. Our last discourse
of this series was on the duty of children to
parents. In the present we shall confine our-
selves to one branch of the duty required of us
* This chapter is abridged from a discourse preached as pastor iu
1843, in Now Orleans, to the First Presbyterian Church and congre-
gation of that city, and published by them. It was then widely oil-
ciliated, but is now out of print. Ouly a few sentences referring to
passi::^" rnd local matters havo been ehanjed or omittod.
352 THE PIETY AND PATRIOTISM OF
toward our superiors. The precept tliat re-
quires us to obey and honor our natural parents
is so broad and comprehensive, spiritual and
dynastic in its reach, that it requires us also to
honor and obey our spiritual fathers, and our
economical^ that is, our social and domestic
fathers ; and to honor and obey our political
fathers. Tlie duty whicli, however, we are now
seeking to illustrate and enforce, is plainly
taught by the apostles, and is specifically the
duty oi pray i)ig for our civil riders. And we
take our text for this subject from Paul :
I exhort^ therefore, that, first of all, supplica-
tions, prayers, intercessions, and giving of
thanhs he made for all men : for Jcings and for
all that arc in authority ; tluit tve may lead a
quiet and peaceful life in cdl godliness and ho-
nesty, For this is good and acceptahle in the
sight of God our Saviour ; tvho ivill have all
onen to he saved, and to come unto tlie hioivledge
of the truth. — 1 Timothy, ii. 1-4.
In these words of the great apostle to the
Gentiles we have a duty enjoined and the
REASONS GIVEN.
PEAYIXG FOR OUli RULEKS. 353
T lie duty ^.v to offer player for all men^ for
Idiujs and for cdl tliat are in autliority. The re-
lation of subject and magistrate reseml)les very
niuch in kind, if not in degree, the relation of
cliild and parent. The very same reasons in
l)ai't, which hind the chlhl to reverence and
oljoy the parent, hind the suT)ject to ohey and
pray for tlie magistrate. It is certainly true
tliat the duty of praying for our rulers, implies
the duty of praying for all properly constituted
authorities in the church and the world — pa-
rents, teachers, legislators, judges, officers of the
army and the navy — and for all that are pos-
^ssed of wealtli, learning or talent, or any other
consideration that gives them influence among
their fellow men.
The reason given for enforcing the . duty is
very similar to^th^ reason given for obeying
our parents — temporal as well as spiritual
blessings are promised. First, that we may
lead a quiet and peaceable life in all godliness
and honesty.
Secondly, for this is good and acceptable in
the siglit of God our Saviour. To offer prayer
354 THE PIETY AND PATEIOTISM OF
for constituted authorities is good in itself, be-
cause it is useful to ourselves and to tlie public,
and it is accej)table, accomj^anied witli a godly
life, in tlie sight of God our Saviour. This is
the highest of, all sanctions ; and what is well-
pleasing to God, is the supreme good and hap-
piness of man. Duty and interest are always
united.
A third reason is the encouragement offered :
That God will have all men to he saved and to
come unto tlie 'knowledge of tlie truth. That is,
God is no respecter of persons :■ hut in every na-
tion he tliat fearetli him and worheth righteous-
ness^ is accepted ivitli him, '
Divine mercy is offered alike to the beggar
and the prince, to the slave and to the master,
to all without money and without price. And
since salvation is offered to all, that some of all
classes — eveiy one that repents and believes —
may be saved; therefore, God wills that the
Gospel should be preached to every creature,
and that all men should be the subjects of our
prayers.
It is here assumed, there is a God who is the
PRAYmG FOR OUE EULERS. 355
Supreme Governor of tlie universe ; that prayer
is instrumental in procuring Ms blessings ; that
our foreftithers were men of prayer. Their
school-houses, judicial benches and legislative
halls, and battle-fields, were consecrated with
prayer. It is assumed, also, that what Cicero
and Montesquieu call virtue, but what Bible-
taught politicians call religion, is essential to
the well-being of society. Keligion and virtue
are, indeed, the main pillars and foundation of
public peace and prosperity. If any doubt on
this point, let them read, not the rantings of a
bigot, nor the superfluities of a schoolman, nor
the harangues of political clergymen, but the
" Vindication of Natural Society," and " Eeflec-
tions on tiie Revolution in France," by Edmund
Burke, and doubt no more.*'^
And it is here assumed that civil government
is necessary to the welfare of society ; that it is
-the guardian of the public peace, and the secu-
rity of every man's person, property and privi-
* These papers are as remarkable for philosophical acumen, pro-
found research, extensive and minute knowledge, as they are for
3loqueuce. See the Works of Edmund Burke.
35G THE PIETY AND PATRIOTISM OF
leges. It is by tlie exercise of civil mitliority
tluit we are secured in our civil rights, pul)lic
interests and domestic institutions. But my
chief purpose is to insist upon the Cliristian
duty of praying for civil magistrates.
Whether phrenology or animal magnetism
can account for it or not, it is certainly true
that man is prone to go from one extreme to
another. The safe medium he is rarely content
to observe. Wlierever the Church and the State
have been united, manifold evils have resulted,
alike disastrous to civil liberty and ecclesiasti-
cal purity. And on the other hand, where the
Church has l)een happily freed from the tram-
mels of State, tliere pious men seem to have
ceased to feel sufficient interest . in tlie State,
they have given ujd the management of politi-
cal affairs too much to the ungodly, and the
members of Christian churches have not looked
for sound principles in the men seeking tlieir"
suffrages, nor have they sought, as was their
duty, the divine blessing upon their rulers. It
is not agreeable to a pious man to forego the
quietness of his home and the devotions of the
PRAYIiS^G FOR OUE EULEIIS. 357
altar, and bear tlie lieat and burden of political
strife, yet some slionld certainly be found of self-
denial and grace enougli to engage in political
life, and still preserve their Christian character
above suspicion. From our practice, it would
seem that when we are not compelled by law
to pray for our rulers, then we consider our-
selves released from all moral obligations to do
so. But the very reverse should be the effect
of such liberty on the heart of an enlightened,
patriotic and pious citizen. As prayer must in
its very nature be a free offering of the desires
of the heart, to God ; so the more free we are
from leccal coercion or restraint as to our reli-
gious duties, the more fervent and frequent
should our prayers be in behalf of our govern-
ment. And yet it must be confessed, the ten-
dency of things among us, has been to neglect
this plain duty. As since the Kevolution w^c
have not been required by law to pray for the
king, and all the " Iloyal Family," so we have
neglected to pray for the President and those
in authority over us. But it is not true that
this ne2:lect is because Americans are not as
358 THE PIETY AISTD PATRIOTISM OF
lojal or patriotic as other nations. Nor is it
true tliat our religion is defective in this mat-
ter. Tlie error is not in our Protestant faith,
but in our practice. The 2:>atriotism and lofty
courage of our countrymen have been too often
proved to need a word of defence. Nor should
their piety be less conspicuous. I would not
be misunderstood. I will yield to no man
either in love for my country, or in zeal to keep
the Church of Christ free from all alliance with
party politics. It is very well known that I
do not believe either in the divine rio;ht of
kings, nor in the supremacy of the pope, the
Czar, or any other potentate. I do not say,
therefore, that any denomination of Christians
should array themselves as a political party,
and cast their votes for such candidates only as
can pronounce their shibboleth. Nor do I say
that our religious press and pulpits should en-
gage in the political strife of the day. No;
God forbid. All such things are, on every ac-
count, to be deprecated. All we mean to say
on this point is, that men of acknowledged
ability, and of sound principles and pure morals
PRAYING FOR OUR RULERS. 359
should be selected to administer tlie afFairs of
State, and that all Christians are bound to
obey, honor and pray for their civil magis-
trates.
THE DUTY OF PRAYING FOR OUR RULERS.
1. We believe neither in the supremacy of
the po2:)e, nor in the divine right of kings ; but
we do believe that the ])oicers tlutt he are or-
dained of God. The heavens do rule. The
Most Hi<2:h ruleth in the kin2:dom of men, and
giveth it to whomsoever he will. Promotion
Cometh neither from the east, nor from the west,
nor from the south. But God is judge; he
putteth down one, and setteth up another. A
man's heart deviseth his way : but the Lord
directeth his steps. The lot is cast into the
lap ; but the whole disposing thereof is of the
Lord. Dan. iv. 32 ; Fs. Ixxv. 6, 7 ; Prov. xvi. 9, 33.
Statesmen and politicians may cast up crowns
and play for kingdoms, and calculate upon
their chances, and boast of their acumen and
foresight, but Jehovah alone is King of kings,
and the Most High alone is the supreme dis-
3 GO THE PIETY AND PATRIOTISM OF
poser of powers, princedoms and dominions."
The fliglit of tlie tallest arcli angel before tlie
eternal tlirone, and tlie immense sweep of com-
ets and planets tlirougli the highest heavens
are not more certainly directed by an Almighty
hand, tlian are the evolutions of the sparrow.
It is a hand almighty that crowns the angels
with goodness and glory, and it is nothing less
that paints the tulij) and the rose, and feeds
the yonng ravens when they cry. It is the all-
seeing eye that directs the torch of discovery
wdiich philosophy bears round the globe, and
kindles up on the outskirts of creation beacon
lights for the advancement of coming genera-
tions ; and it is nothing less that takes know-
ledge of the wants of tlie j)ic)us. The Lord
knoweth them that are his. He approveth of
their w^ay. He nnmbereth the hairs of their
head. His ear is ever open to their cry, his eye
is ever upon them for good, and his hand is
always stretched out for their relief.
The 2^otvers that he are ordained of God,
That is, pious rulers are raised up as God's
ministers for good ; and wicked rulers are per-
PRAYING FOR OUR RULERS. 361
mitted as a scourge and chastisement for their
peoj)le's sins. In the world we often see the
jDoisoned chalice emptied by those who drugged
it for others. He that dlggetli a pit falletli into
it, Haman's gallows for Mordecai was the
instrument of his own execution. And often
the very effort of our own evil thoughts — of the
vaulting ambition of wicked men —
"O'erleaps itself
And fiiUs on t'other side " — —
SO it was with Pharaoh, with Nebuchadnez-
zar, and with Pilate, and with many others.
Wicked men may be raised to power, and may
propose to themselves mighty schemes by
which to extend and concentrate their influ-
ence, and they may labor most perseveringly
for their accomplishment, and with the con-
sciousness of success walk in the palace of their
imagination and say : " Is not this great Baby-
lon, that I have built for the house of the king-
dom, by the might of my power, and for the
honor of my majesty?" But there is an over-
ruling Providence, just and good, that guides,
16
362 THE PIETY AND PATRIOTISM OF
nevertheless, the wheels of the universe, and
brings harmony out of the seeming chaos of
human affairs. Pharaoh and Nebuchadnezzar
were as truly the servants of God, in accom-
plishing his will, as Moses and Daniel. Surely
the Lord maketh the wrath of man to praise
him, and the remainder of wrath he restraineth.
" There's a Divinity that shapes our ends,
Rough hew them how we will."
The civil power, then, is in some sort the
representative of the divine government. Our
rulers are the image of the Divine Kuler.
Mao;istrates are God's officers. To render them
that respect and homage which is well pleasing
in his sight, is to acknowledge his providence.
It is an act of religious worship. It is an act
of homage to God from whom all power ema-
nates. It is an act of adoration. It is then a
duty as well as a privilege to offer thanksgiving
to Almighty God for our laws, liberties and
institutions, and most worthy praise to his holy
name for the warriors and statesmen, patriot?;
and pious men that he has raised up for us, and
PRAYIiS-G FOR OUE EULERS. 363
to pray fervently for our rulers — for their per-
sonal welfare and tlie happiness of tlieir fami-
lies, and for the divine blessing to rest upon
their official labors.
2. To ]}raij for our rulers is cm act o^ true
patriotism. As it is our duty to reverence and
o])ey them, so it is our duty to pray for them.
No external form of respect can so fully demon-
strate our affection for them, as the pouring out
of the desires of our heart before the Lord for
their welfare. Nothins; can be a strong-er aro^u-
ment of the esteem and consideration in which
we hold them than the practice of praying for
them. It is a j)ractice without fee or emolu-
ment. It is difficult to conceive of any act so
purely free from sinister motives, as the making
of intercessions to Almighty God for our rulers.*
* " A foe to God was ne'er a friend to man." He that feareth not
God regardeth not man. " As he who is not loyal to the Icing, can
never well obey his officers, so he that subjecteth not his soul to the
original power of his Creator, can never well obey the derivative
power of earthly governors." " Magistrates are as truly God's offi-
cers as preachers; and, therefore, as he that heareth preachers,
hcareth him, so he that obeyeth rulers obeyeth him." See much
more on this point, in Baxter's Works, London, 1830, vol vi. pp. 37,
88, et seq.
364 THE PIETY AT^D PATRIOTISM OF
Nor is it surprising that even heathen princes
should have required the prayers of their sub-
jects in their behalf. Thus, in Ezra, we find a
decree of the king of Persia, charging his offi-
cers to furnish the Jewish elders with sacrifices
— all " that which they have need of, both
young bullocks and rams, and lambs for the
burnt offerings of the God of heaven ; wheat,
salt, wine and oil, according to the appointment
of the priests which are at Jerusalem, let it be
given them day by day without fail : that they
may offer sacrifices of sweet savors unto the
God of heaven, and pray for the life of the king
and of his sons." Ezra vi. 9, 10.
And so, also, Pliny informs us concerning
the Koman emperors, even in tlieir heathenish
state. "We have," says he, "been wont to
make vows for the eternity of the empire, and
for the welfare of the citizens, yea, for the wel-
fare of the princes, and in their welfare for the
eternity of the empire." *
* " Nuncuparc vota et pro aeternitate imperii, et pro salute civiura,
imo pro salute principium, ac propter illos pro aeternitate imperii sole-
bamus." — PL Pancg.
PPwAYIiS^G FOR OUR RULERS. 365
3. Pious rulers^ and all lolio acknowledge the
Supreme Government of God., desire an interest
in the prayers of tlieir peopjle. And even those
who seem not to feel tlieir dependence upon
the Sovereign Ruler of the universe, are pleased
to have the people pray for them, for it is an
act of loyalty that few will perform who are
not sincere. It is a decent testimony of respect
toward them, and greatly tends to establish
their authority and secure obedience to their
commands. How can we sincerely honor and
reverence our rulers, if we have no heart to
offer up prayers for them to him who has re-
quired us to pray for all men, especially for
rulers and all that are in authority ? It is the
divine command, that "every soul be subject
unto the higher powers, not only for wrath, but
also for conscience' sake. For, for this cause
pay ye tribute also : for they are God's minis-
ters attending continually uj)on this very thing.
Kender, therefore, to all their dues ; tribute to
whom tribute is due, custom to whom custom,
fear to whom fear, honor to whom honor." It
is, then, an act of patriotism, and of gratitude
366 THE PIETY AND PATEIOTISM OF
and obedience to God, and of justice and cliari
ty toward our rulers to pray for tliem. How
can we be faithful to our rulers, if we are . not
obedient " to tlie Most High, by whom princes
rule and judges decree justice ?"
If we sincerely and habitually pray for our
country, we shall daily grow in attachment to
it, and if we daily remember our rulers in our
devotions we shall not fail to love and obey
them. To neglect this duty is to be wanting
in patriotism, as well as in obedience to the
divine commandments. The best Christian is
the best patriot, the most faithful subject, and
the bravest warrior. A Christian is truly " the
highest style of a man."
I exhort that — -pimyer he made for all men^
for Icings and for all that are in authority^ that
we may lead a quiet and peaceaUe life in all
godliness and honesty.
4. The jjiety and ijatriotism of jpraying for
our riders are seen in the practice of the Church
of God in all ages. The apostle's command in
the text is positive. And it has been the prac-
tice of the pious in all past ages, and in all
PRAYINa FOR OUR RULERS. 367
countries to hold tlieir civil rulers in esteem
and to pray for tliem. It is a duty tauglit in
tlie Bible, both by precept and example. God
commanded tlie people by Lis propliet, wlien
tlie Jews were conquered by tlie king of Baby-
lon, and carried away captives, " Seek tke peace
of the city wliitlier I liave caused you to be
carried away captives, and pray unto tlie Lord
for it ; for in the peace thereof shall ye have
peace." The Scriptures abound in instances
of the efficacy of prayer, both in regard to pub-
lic and private blessings. Thus Abraham's
prayer healed Abimelech and his family of bar-
renness ; the prayers of Moses quenched the fire,
and cured the bitings of the hery serpents, and
so of the prayers of Joshua, of Hannah, of
Elijah, of Elisha, and of others. The prayers
of Asa discomfited a million of Arabians, and
those of Jehoshaphat destroyed a numerous
army of his enemies by his own hands, and
those of Hezekiah brouccht down an anccel from
heaven to cut off the Assyrians, and those of
Manasseh restored him to his kingdom, and
those of Esther saved her people from the brink
368 THE PIETY AND PATRIOTISM OF
of ruin, and tliose of Nehemiali inclined a pagan
king's heart to favor liis pious designs, and
tliose of Daniel obtained for liim visions, and
tlie interpretation of dreams. Noah, Job and
Samuel, and a liost of saints have been power-
ful through much prayer, and as princes have
prevailed with God. "All things," says the
blessed Saviour, "whatsoever we shall ask in
prayer, believing, we shall receive — He that
asketh receiveth, and he that seeketh iindeth,
and to him that knocketh it shall be opened."
"As the good bishop," says Dr. Barrow, "ob-
serving St. Austin's mother, with what con-
stancy and passionateness she did pray for her
son, being then engaged in ways of error and
vanity, did encourage her, saying : It is imfpos-
sible that the -swi o-^ these devotions should perish:
so may we hopefully presume, and encourage
ourselves, that a prince will not miscarry, for
whose welfare many good people do earnestly
solicit ; jFieri non potest ut princeps istarum
lacrymarum pereatP *
* Dr. Barrow's Works, vol. i., serna. x., p. 95. Et sic etiam " Si
Stephanas non orassct ecclesia Paulam non habuisset."
PEAYIJSTG FOE OUR RULERS. 369
It is a remarkable saying of a Jewisli master,
" Pray for the happiness of a kingdom or gov-
ernment ; for if it were not for tlie fear of tliat,
men would devour one another alive." And
Josephus tells us, that " when the Jews were
made subject to the Etonians (though it was by
conquest) twice a day they offered u^) sacrifices
for the life and safety of the emperor." The
apostle in the text directs that " first of all sup-
plications, prayers, intercessions, and giving of
thanks, be made for all men : for kings, and
for all that are in authority." Hei^e is a posi-
tive command. The Apostolic Constitutions, a
very old work, though not the work of the
apostles themselves, speaks of the prayers of
Church, on communion occasions, for rulers.
Tertullian assures us the "ancient Christians
always prayed for all the emperors, that God
would grant them long life, a secure reign, a
safe fiimily, valiant armies, a faithful senate, a
loyal people, a quiet world, and whatever they
as men, or as emperors, could wish. This they
did," says he, " even for their persecutors, and
16*
370 THE PIETY AND PATRIOTISM OF
often even in the pangs of tlie most cruel suf-
ferino; and death."
Cliiysostom says of the Christians of his
time : " That all communicants did know how
every day, both at even and morning, to make
supplications for all the world, and for the em-
peror, and for all that are in authority." ^
Lactantius saith to Constantine, "We with
daily prayers do su]3plicate God, that he would
iirst of all keej^ thee, whom he hath willed to
be the keeper of things ; then that he would
inspire into thee a will whereby thou mayst
ever persevere in the love of God's name;
which is salutary to all, both to thee for thy
ha23piness, and to us for our quiet," f
So Cyprian : " We pray to God, not oiily foi
ourselves, but for all mankind, and particularly
for the erhperors."
And Origen : " We pray for kings and rulers,
that, with their royal authority, they may be
found possessing a wise and prudent mind."
* For the originals of Tertullian and Chrysostotn, see Dr. Barrow's
Works, vol. i. p. 91.
f Lactant. vii. 26.
rr.ATTXG FOR OUR RULERS. 3^1
So, also, the ancient liturgies contain clivers
prayers for tlie emperors. And the confessions
of faith and directories for j^ublic worshi23 of
all Protestant churches, recognize due obedience
to magistrates and the duty of praying for
them.
" We are to pray for the whole Church of
Christ upon earth, for magistrates^ and minis-
ters, for ourselves, our brethren, yea, our ene-
mies, and for all sorts of men living, or that
shall live hereafter ; but not for the dead, nor
for those that are known to have sinned the
sin unto death." Larger Cat. ans, ^6> 183 qices.^
and also the ans. to the 127 qites.^
5. It is but common Christian charity to
pray for our rulers, Jirst, l3ecause they are but
men — our fellow men, and, secondly^ they are
more in need of our prayers than common men.
" There are no men," says the late Dr. A. Alex-
ander, "among us, who would be rendered
more useful by Christian jiiety than those who
are intrusted with power and official influence.
* See Vindications of Protestants in tlie point of obedience, etc.
By Pet<>r Du Moulin, D.D. An excellent work.
372 THE PIETY ATnTD PATRIOTISM OF
They are exalted above tlieir fellow citizens,
and should be exemplary in proportion to their
elevation. Those who are delegated by the
people to make laws for the protection of life,
property and liberty, have an authority given
them which is accompanied with a fearful re-
sponsibility. So few who engage in political
concerns are governed by a regard to the glory
of God, and the best interests of men, that the
requiring that such would-be pious men, sounds
strangely, and will appear unto many a novel-
ty. That ministers of the Gospel, and other chief
officers, should be religious men, all will admit,
but that legislators and lawyers should be such,
seems not to be evident. But there is no class
of men in society to whom piety is more neces-
saiy and important than civil rulers. They
need this ennobling principle to enable them
steadily to pursue those objects which are con-
nected with the public welfare."
There are some peoj)le who seem to think
riches and titles, and offices of honor and trust,
are vices of themselves, and that poverty and
obscurity are much the same thing as godliness.
PRAYING FOE OUR RULERS. 373
They presume on tlie goodness of God to give
them eternal life in the world to come, simply
because they have evil things here. They per-
suade themselves that all men abo^^e them are
like the rich man in the Gospel, w^ho fared
sumptuously every day and was clothed in fine
linen, hut who died, and lifted up his eyes in
hell, being in torment; and that they them-
selves are like Lazarus. As though God would
send men to perdition merely because they
were rich, and possessed of influence and stand-
ing among their fellow men, and save the poor
and wretched merely for being poor. This
class of individuals consider themselves as the
supporters of the rich, whom they look upon
as the caterpillars of society. To use their own
style, the rich, or those intrusted with wealth
and honors, live upon their labors, like drones
in a hive ; and salaried officers, whether in the
state or the university, or on the bench, they
consider as mice and vermin, that eat the honey
which they, the poor laboring bees, have long
been gathering. Such envious — I should have
Baid wicked — thoughts are as far from truth,
374 THE PIETY AND PATRIOTISM OF
from just views of society and from the princi-
ples of tlie Bible, as they are evidence of a
mean and contracted spirit. These very j^er-
sons, by indulging sucli jealousies, sliow that the
grapes are sour. They would act on the dog-
in-the-manger principle if they could. They
would themselves be what they suppose the
rich and the great to be, if they knew how to
attain such a condition. The most domineering
and haughty are usually such as have been, by
some freak of fortune, raised to wealth and'
j)ower from humble circumstances. The most
cruel masters are such as have once been slaves,
but are now set over their quondam felloAV-ser-
vants. The most haughty aristocrats — those
that make the loudest pretensions — are often
the merest upstarts. Families of the greatest
pride are not . unfrequently such as have once
stood exceedingly low on the social scale. I
am not objecting to every one improving his
condition, if he do it honestly. I am not o^-
posed to the apj)rentice becoming master, and
the steward owner. I only mention these cases
to show that the prejudice and ill will which
PEAYING FOR OUR RULERS. 375
tlie laboring classes are too prone to indulge
against the rich, the learned, or the professional
classes of society, are unjust, for there is no
royal road to knowledge and power. The door
is open to all. The highest gift of the freest
nation on the globe may be obtained by the
poorest freeborn man-child of America. These
prejudices too, I am sorry to say, are proof of
as much depravity in the laboring people, not
as may actually exist among office-holders and
the learned professions, but as they are sup-
posed to possess. Those who are most apt to
complain know not their own hearts. Is tliy
servant a dog that lie should do this thing?
And yet, says an old writer, 'Hhe dog did
do that very thing." The bird flies high,
but the arrow may bring him down ; the
fish swims deej), but the hook can bring it up :
but the human heart, who can comprehend ?
It is an exceeding deep, who can find it out ?
The Bible teaches us that riches and worldly
consideration are not absolutely inconsistent
with piety ; Init that it is more difficult for a
man to be pious, who is encumbered with the
876 THE PIETY AND PATRIOTISM OF
possessions and honors of this world. This is
perfectly obvious. Many of the pious men,
however, named in the Bible, as Abraham and
Lot, Job and David, were men of great wealth.
Many kings and politicians, and lawyers and
physicians, and philosophers and scholars, have
been eminently pious men Such instances may
be rare, but they are by no means impossible.
Poverty is not always accompanied with godli-
ness, but rather the reverse. Godliness loitli
contentment is great gain. Kags and filth and
sin, are much oftener found on the same j)erson,
than that a rio^hteous man should be found
begging bread. A man is not to lose his soul
because he has estates, but for placing his affec-
tions upon them, and the neglect of his duty
toward God and his fellow men. Nor is a man
to be saved, because he is as poor as Lazarus,
but because he is pious in his poverty. The
Gospel knows no distinction of 2:)ersons accord-
ing to the flesh. All are concluded under sin.
The same terms are propounded to all, whether
rich or poor : namely, repentance toward God,
and faith in the Lord Jesus Christ. He that
PEAYING FOE OUE EULERS. 377
believetli shall be saved, and lie tliat believetli
not shall be damned.
And as it is in grace, so it is in society. We
are all members one of another. AVe are all
parts of the same great web. We all have need
of one another. I have need of you, and you
have need of me. The happiness of each one
is included in the well-doing of every one.
Every one is his brother's keeper. In this great
family there is, however, a great diversity of
gifts and offices. One is the head to do the
thinking^ and his thinhing is really as onuch to
the productive industry of tlie country^ as the
plougliing of the farmer. Another is tlie hand
to do the iDorMng, and his ivorlcing is as essen-
tial to the political and morcd ivell-heing of
society as is the thinMng of the other. Arid
they are both equal.
Our rulers, then, are doubly entitled to our
daily intercessions at the throne of heavenly
grace. They are lone of our hone and flesh of
our flesh. They are our creatures. They are
of us, l)ut they are al30ve us. Being of us, they
are but men, fallible like ourselves. Being
378 THE PIETY AITD PATEIOTISM OF
above us, tliey are by that very elevation tlie
more in need of our eliarity and prayers.
First. Their duties are ^yeciilicuiy difficult.
The affiiirs which they are called upon to guide
and settle are of great weight and importance,
involving: in their decisions the well-beino- of
hundreds and thousands and millions of their
fellow men. Measures of great consequence
have to be examined, discussed, proposed,
adopted. And even when there is much wis-
dom and ability and courage, and the 23urest
intentions, it is not always an easy matter to
hear a cause upon its true merits, and render a
righteous decision. The burdens of office to a
high-minded and virtuous man are never light.
They that are great among their fellow men, are
servants of all. Those possessed of estates and
honors, talents and influence, are also possessed
of vast entailed responsibilities. Nor can they
escape from responsibility. It is as inseparable
from them as their identity, and as lasting as
tlieir immortality. He tliat increaseth hioiv-
ledge^ increasetli sorroiv. Much more does he
increase his cares and labors that increaseth his
PRAYIKG FOR OUR RULERS. 379
riclies and lieapetli up lionors, and runnetli
after and gainetli tlie liomage of Lis fellow men.
Our rulers are more to be pitied, to be loved
and. prayed for, than to be envied. " The
world continually doth assault them with all
its advantages ; with all its baits of pleasure,
with all its enticements to pride and vanity, to
oppression and injustice, to sloth, to luxury, to
exorbitant self-will and self-conceit, to every
sort of vicious 23ractice. Their eminency of
state, their affluence of wealth, their uncontrol-
lable power, their exemption from common con-
straints, their continual distractions and encum-
brances by varieties of care and business, their
multitude of obsequious followers, and scarcity
of fLiithful friends to advise or reprove them,
their having no obstacles before them to check
their wills, to cross their humors, to curb their
lusts and passions, are so piany dangerous snares
unto them ; wherefore they do need plentiful
measures of grace, and mighty assistance from
God, to preserve them from the worst errors
and sins; into, which, otherwise, 'tis almost a
miracle if the}^ are not plunged." " All princes
380 TlIE PIETY AND PATEIOTISM' OF
Laving many avocations and temptations hind-
ering tliem to j)ray enongli for themselves, do
need supplemental aid from the devotions of
others."— J7;'. Barroio.
Second. They are exposed to peculiar dangers.
As their field of labor is enlarged, so are the
facilities for the gratification of appetite and
passion increased, and the sources of temptation
multiplied. And just as they are elevated
above their fellow men and above their former
condition in society, they are apt to forget their
responsibility. Sometimes the height makes
them dizzy. Sometimes even a trip to Wash-
ington makes our representatives forget their
constituents and their kindred. Sometimes a
voyage to Europe absolutely turns the heads of
. simple republicans. They come home full of
lords and ladies, fetes and routs, and stars and
ribbons and buttons, all such anti- American
trumpery. Now their own dear native land
grows nothing worthy of them. Their dress
and china must be jmrchased in London or
Paris. Alas, poor human nature ! It is not
every one of us that can bear elevation. He
PPvAYIXG FOR OUK RULERS. 381
that can smm in liis fat Tier's mill-pond, may be
carried down with violence by the muddy tur-
bulence of the great river. It is an ol:)servation
of old Humphrey, that " like paper kites in the
air, we do pretty w^ell while checked with a
strong string; but cut the string, and let us
have our own way, and, like the poor kite, ^ve
come tumbling down into the mire." He that
does very well with a thousand, may be utterly
ruined by a hundred thousand. " It is harder,"
says some one, " for that bird to iiy, that hath
many pound weights tied to keep her down,
than that which hath but a straw to carry to
her nest. It is harder mountino; heavenwards
■with, lordships and kingdoms, than with less
impediments." Even those that can bear an
elevation to power are under temptations to
make their license for doing whatsoever they
vfill. Whereas, in fact, the greater power and
authority any one hath, the less liberty he
hath to do anything that is wrong or of
questionable integrity.* For the great(u^ the
power and authority that God hath invested
* In maxima quaquc fortuna minimum liccrc. — Cicero.
382 THE PEETY AND PATEIOTISM OF
any man witli, tlie greater are liis obligations
to be good liimself, and to do good to Ms
fellow men, because the greater is liis influence
and means to do good to others. The more
influence a man's example has, the greater
are' his obligations to set a good one. What
a delightful sight would it be to see those
who are eminent in -piacQ and power contin-
ually setting an example of godliness ! What
would it not do for the moral character of
our city, if all our authorities would upon
conscience respect the Lord's day and the in-
stitutions of the Bible?
It will be admitted that those who are most
worthy of our charities, are the proper objects
of benevolence, and that it is our duty to pray
for all men, then especially for our rulers, for
they are men ; and they are burdened with
peculiar labors and trials, and exposed to pe-
culiar dangers. They are like sentinels placed
ii2)on the top of a barren mountain, exposed
to the merciless 23eltings of every storm for
our safety, while we dwell quietly in the
flowery vale below. The most fortunate of
PRAYIXG FOR OUR RULERS. 883
them liave open enemies and insidious foes.
They are surrounded l)y the jealous and the
narrow-minded, or by disappointed office-seek-
ers. Beset by the offieiojis servility or para-
sites of flatterers, who soothe them in their
faults, and humor them in their passions, and
iire up their corrupt and vicious inclinations,
whenever there is a possibility of advancing
their own selfish designs. Exposed to violence
and treachery, the cares of office, and tempta-
tions of place and power, who are so much in
need of our prayers as our rulers ?
Has not the ablest of them need to pray with
Solomon : " Give thy servant an understanding
heart, to judge thy people, that I may discern
between good and bad ; for who is able to
judge this so great a people." It is not hj
mere human wisdom and strength that man
prevails. The race is not to the swift, nor the
battle to the strono^. Salvation is of the Lord.
" The^e is," says the psalmist, " no king saved
by the multitude of an host." Except the Lord
keepeth the city, the watchmen w^ake but in
vain. Except the Lord preserve our laws and
384 THE PIETY AND PATRIOTISM OF
liberty and institutions, our army and navy,
patriotic and brave as tliey are, will be but as
chaff before tlie tempest.
Third. To ]3ray for our rulers is then a duty
to ourselves and our children, as well as to
them and to the public. The good of the com-
monwealth is greatly aifected by the principles
and character of its rulers.
Where the people are the sovereign, rulers
are the creatures of their will. The nation
lives and has its breathing in its rulers. In
oriental style a ruler is compared to a tall ce-
dar, whose shadow is for protection and com-
fort ; and his death is likened to its fall, that
shakes the earth. That is, the death of a wise
and virtuous ruler is a great public calamity.
It is an interrupting of the regular administra-
tion of the affairs of state. It is a loss to the
public of precious experience, well-tried abili-
ties, patiently acquired confidence, and the con-
sequent peril of putting public interest into
hands untried. Hence King David is called
the light of Israel^ and hence the people once
said to him out of the overflowincc of their
PRAYING FOR OUR RULERS. o05
patriotic hearts, Thou art loortli more tlian ten
tJiousaiid of us. And so, also, ISTeliemiali and
Daniel eacli comj)limented liis sovereign by
saying, hing live forever^ which is trans-
lated in England into God save the Queen.
As when the sun shines brightly the day is
clear; as the ship is in good condition when
out in open sea, with a good pilot, and sails
crowded mth prosperous breezes hastening to-
ward the destined port, so the people are hap-
py and prosperous when wise and good men
guide the affairs of state. But woe to the
land whose ruler is a child — weak, wayward,
fickle.
The character and deeds of our rulers are
inseparable from our national honor and pros-
perity. Our chief magistrate cannot say, I am
tlie State; still, from the highest office in the na-
tion's gift to the lowest, there is an inseparable
connection between the national glory and the
character of its rulers. The rulers and their
electors are members of the same body. Their
fortunes mutually reflect each other. The ex-
ample, opinions and manners of men in office
17
386 THE PIETY AKD PATRIOTISM OF
are the models of our young men who aspire
to take their places. It is, therefore, of the
most vital importance that they be pure-minded,
upright men — men of good morals and sound
principles.
The public welfare is essentially connected
with the character and well-doing ot rulers.
The honor and prosperity of rulers should be
the glory of the people. They are inseparably
united. The people cannot live happily if
theu' rulers are in peril. They mutually par-
take of each other's fortunes. They make but
one civil and political body, and what part
soever of it suffers, all the other parts sympa-
thize.
Thus Tertullian"^ says, speaking to Gentile
magistrates, "We pray for you, because with
you the empire is shaken: and the other mem-
bers of it being shaken, assuredly even we, how
far soever we may be thought removed from
the calamity, are found in some place of the
fall." The very same consideration the apostle
introduces, as the reason why we should pray
. . i lUIV; .: • Tertul. ApoL, «. &2.
PRAYING FOR OUR RULERS. 387
for our rulers, " I exhort you to make prayer
for kings — that we may lead a quiet and peace-
able life in all godliness and honesty."
The connection between the moral character
and prosperous administration of rulers and
the happiness of the people is obvious.
1. From their ivfluence tipon the people.
Their example has great influence. "A king
sitting in the throne of judgment scattereth
away all evil with his eyes." " His power is
the shield of innocence, the fence of right, the
shelter of weajvuess and simplicity against vio-
lence and frauds. His very look is sufficient
to advance goodness and suppress wickedness."
The examj)le of a pious man in power is a liv-
ing law to the people, and does more than ten
thousand statutes in precept alone, to mould
and fashion public sentiment. The political
opinions, the moral sentiments and the man-
ners of civil magistrates are caught up, imitated
and followed. If they are wise and good, sin
is rebuked and the righteous are encouraged.
If they are duellists and gamblers, if they are
profane, Sabbath-breakers, neglecters of reli-
388 THE PIETY AI^D EATEIOTISM OF
gion, licentious and infidel in their sentiments,
and given to mucli strong drink, the pious
mourn, and the wicked are emboldened in their
iniquities.
2. The influence of rulers iifon the people is
obvious from the dose connection there is hetvjeen
their moral character and the happiness of the
'people.
Righteousness exalteth a nation and estahlish-
eth the throne — when it goeth well with the
righteous the city rejoicetli, for hy the Messing
0^ the upright the city is exalted. -Ten righteous
men would have saved Sodom. For the elect's
sake, our Saviour informs us, the days of ven-
geance were shortened. The effectual fervent
prayer of a righteous man availeth much. It
is a munition of rocks for national defence.
Now, since the Scriptures saj^ so much of the
piety of private persons, then how much more
important is the example of pious rulers. Is
it not said in the Bible that God, for David's
sake, preserved Judah from destruction, even
in the days of Hezekiah, when the king of
Assyria invaded the land ? God by the mouth
PEAYING FOR OUR RULERS. 389
of Isaiali declared: I will defend the city of
Jerusalem^ for mine own sake^ and for my ser-
vant David'' s salce. Wlio can tell liow often
God has spared our guilty land for liis servant
Washington's sake, and for tlie sake of the Hu-
guenot and Pilgrim Fathers, whom he win-
nowed out from Europe, and brought over to
this then wilderness continent, to give it the
Gospel, and to make it blossom and bloom as
the garden of the Lord.
There are numerous instances in the Holy
Scriptures which teach us that there is a moral
connection of merit and guilt between rulers
and their people. Mutually each is rewarded
for the virtues, or punished for the vices of the
other. For the people's sin sometimes misfor-
tunes fall upon their ruler, and he is removed
from them, or he brings upon them some ca-
lamity. Thus, Samuel said to the Israelites :
If ye do wickedly^ ye sliall he consumed^ hotli ye
and your hing. And so, on the other hand,
for the sins of rulers, the jDeople are afflicted.
Thus Solomon's iniquities brought evil to all
Israel. And so also in the case of David, when'
390 THE PIETY AKD PATEIOTISM OF
he numbered the people ; and of Aaron, when
he made the golden calf, and so also in regard
to the sins of Saul and Jeroboam. And of
Manasseh, it is said, notivithstcmding all the
good deeds of JosiaJi^ still the Lord turned not
from the fierceness of his great wratli^ whereioith
his anger was hindled against Jitdah^ hecause
of all the provocations wherevnth Manasseh
provolced him. And Hezekiah rendered not
again according to the henefit done unto him ;
for his heart was lifted up ; therefore there ivas
wrath upon him^ and upon Judah and Jeru-
salem,
We are too apt to impute all our misfortunes
to our rulers, and take all our prosperity to
ourselves. We often blame the administration
of affairs, when we are ourselves chiefly in
fault. Where, as happily with us, the people
elect their own rulers, there the people are
more to blame than the rulers. If they place
over themselves a weak and wicked man, they
become partakers in all his evil deeds. If they
give power into the hands of a wicked man,
' they sin themselves, and they cause him to sin,
PRAYING FOR OUR RULERS. 391
and partake in all his sins. Where there is
such sovereignty, there is a fearful responsi-
bility.
3. It is our duty to do good to all men as we
have opportunity — and to pray for all men;
and, therefore, to do good to, and to pray for
our rulers, for they are not stocks, nor stones,
nor angels ; but men — our fellow men, and the
more in need of our prayers, as their labors and
cares are increased. And to pray for our rulers
is the cheapest, and yet the most effectual way
of doing them good. However rich a man may
be, he cannot dispense alms to every one ; but
he may enlarge his heart in prayer for the
whole human race. "Our prayers can reach
the utmost ends of the earth ; and by them our
charity may embrace all the world." By prayer
the widow and the orphan may become bene-
factors to the rich, and the humblest citizen
heap the choicest gifts upon the civil magis-
trate.
Since the breath of all men is in the hands
of him who fashioneth and turneth their hearts
whithersoever he will, it is our duty and privi-
392 THE PIETY AND PATRIOTISM OF
lege to pray to God to direct our rulers in tlie
right way, and incline tlieir hearts to wliat is
well pleasing in his sight — that they may so
administer justice with mercy as to secure peace
of conscience and the approbation of the Judge
of all — that in health and prosperity they may
long live; and, finally, after this life, attain
everlasting joy and felicity where all the pious
shall reign as kings forever, through our Lord
Jesus Christ. Amen.
It is then a plain duty enjoined upon all
Christians to pray for the civil magistrate un-
der whom they live. The character of the
mao-istrate and the manner of reachinof the hisfh
place of authority has nothing to do with the
Christian duty of praying for him. It were
difficult in the whole range of histoiy to find
majristrates more wicked and cruel than those
actually in power, when the apostles wrote so
plainly upon the duty of Christians to obey tlie
powers that Z»^,and to pray for those in authori-
ty. Historically also we have found it to be
the teaching of the Church of Christ from its
foundation, that Christians should pray for
PRAYINa FOR OUR RULERS. 393
their rulers. And we do seriously call in ques-
tion botli tlie Christianity and the patriotism
of any man that does not habitually pray for
his country and its rulers. It is the divinely
appointed economy that we should use means
to obtain the divine blessing. And one of
those means is prayer. "Without prayer to
God, we have no right to expect the divine
blessing either upon ourselves or our country.
If we call upon God, he has promised to hear
us. But the nation or people that lolll not serve
liim^ lie will destroy. The hand of the Lord is
tvpon all them for good that seek him^ hut his
power and his ivratli is against tliem that for-
sake him. Them that honor me^ saith God^ I
will honor^ and they that despise me, shall he
lightly esteemed.
The man that lives without prayer lives in
continual sin against his maker. And if he
continue pray erl ess, he cannot go to heaven.
And sui-ely, if it is a Christian duty for all men
to pray for their rulers, it is the duty of civil
magistrates to pray for themselves and for the
people. Parents and teachers esteem it a privi-
17*
894 PEAYIISTG rOPw OUR EULERS.
lege to pray for tliose committed to tlieir care,
Mucli more sliould civil magistrates pray for
themselves and for those over whom they exer-
cise authority. And loliosoGver shall call on tlie
name of the Lord shall he saved.
XIV.
CHEISTIAN SOLDIERS.
Colonel Gardiner — Captain Vicars — Field-
Marshal Suivari 'ow — Gene) ^al Haveloch —
General Jackson,^
We allude again to Col. Gardiner, not to give
any detailed account of his life. This is unne-
cessary, seeing that the history of his life and
Christian character has long been familiar to
the reading world. We would, however, have
* The author does not profess, of course, to give anything like an
exhaustive notice of these distinguished warriors, nor to exclude
many others from the right of being enrolled in a similar place in
Hie Church of the Army. He has introduced these rather than
others, because he was better acquainted with their history, and also
because their characters seemed to him to be most fit illustrations of
the main points in hand. The religious opinions of our own great
Wash'ngtun are too well known to need a remark. Indeed, it is be-
lieved that all our Great Captains are and have been believers in
Christianity, and most of them communing members in the Church
of Christ.
396 CHRISTIAN SOLDIERS.
it distinctly remembered, tliat lie was as well
known for his love of country and for valor,
tested in many a battle-field, as be was for
piety. He was as brave and skilful in defend-
ing virtue against vice, and the truth of God
against infidelity, as he was in leading his men
into the thickest of the fight. During his earlier
years, he often expressed a wish that it might
be God's will for him to sacrifice his life in de-
fence of religion and of the liberties of his coun-
try. This prayer was answered. The last re-
cord we have of him, ^vi'itten by himself, is in
the following terms : " The enemy are advanc-
ing ; but I trust in the Almighty God, who do-
eth whatsoever he pleases in the armies of hea-
ven, and among the inhabitants of the earth.
I have one life to sacrifice to my country's
safety, and I shall not spare it." This was only
the day before he fell beneath the blow of a
broadsword in the battle of Preston Pans.
The sublimest paii: of his life, however, was his
example of godliness amid the profaneness and
dissipation of the camp. Of Captain Vicars we
have also spoken, and while we do not think
CHRISTIAN SOLDIEES. 397
his memoirs just the kind of a record that
might do the most good, we do greatly admire
the man as a Christian soldier. His lofty cour-
age, self-denial, and diligence in doing good are
ever to be remembered. He found time to pray
and read the Bible, to visit the sick, attend
meetings for j)rayer, and to cheer up his men
amid the hardships and labors and perils of the
camp as well as of the battle. We find him
writing thus to his sister : " Be assured you will
feel far happier in this world, even, by making
religion your chief pursuit and study, than by
all the pleasures and gaieties which your young
heart may now be longing after. I tell you
candidly and seriously, that I would willingly
part witli every earthly pleasure for life^ for
one hour's communion with Jesus every day !"
And again : " Oh, that the Lord God would
come among us with a high hand and with a
stretched out arm; that he would, by the
mighty power of the Holy Ghost, change and
soften the hard hearts of those who despise tlie
riches of his grace, and who make a mock of
sin while standino^ on tlie verp^e of ete^-nitv :
398 CHRISTIAN SOLDIERS.
tliat lie would plant tlie rose of Sliaron in all
its freshness and fulness in tlie ground of every
troubled, sin-laden lieart." Sucli was the heart
of the man, who gave his own blankets to his
soldiers, and slept on leaves, and, like Jacob,
had a stone for his j)illow. Such was the
Christian soldier, who roused his little band of
two hundred in the dead of night to meet the
attack of two thousand Russians in the trenches,
by shouting: "Now, 97th, up and charge!"
He himself led the way, and when a bayonet
wound drew the blood copiously from his
breast, his voice rose higher still, as he cried :
"Men of the 97th, follow me !" as he leaped
the parapet and charged the enemy. For a
moment the moonbeams fell on his flashing
sword as he waved it for the last time and gave
his dying cheer to his men : " This way, 97th !"
And he fell amidst his foes, but fell in the arms
of victory.
FIELD-MARSHAL SUWARROW.
This officer is the greatest general Russia
ever produced, and the most extraordinary man
CHRISTIAN SOLDIERS. 399
of his time. He combined tlie highest talents
for war with the most extraordinary devotion.
He had a superstitious influence over the minds
of his soldiers. His deeds in arms are almost
fabulous, and his manner of life singular. He
had a philosophical contempt for dress, and
miQ:ht often have been seen drillins: his men in
his shirt sleeves. By exercise, cold baths, and
frugal diet, which he always shared with the
soldiers, he kept himself, even to old age, in a
vigorous state of health. He was a rare exam-
ple of temperance. He scrupulously kept all
the fasts of the Grreek Church. War and its
duties w^ere the whole occupation and diversion
of his life. He insj)ired his soldiers with a
courage that made them invincible, no matter
how great the numbers or adverse the circum-
stances. He was a man of incorruptible hon-
esty, immovable in his purposes, and inviolable
in his promises. As he shared all the hard-
ships and perils of his soldiers, so they never
refused to follow him. He could march them
fartlier, carry them through greater fatigue, and
make them victors over greater odds, than any
400 CHRISTIAN SOLDIERS.
man in Europe. Devoutly religious, he would
often stop liis soldiers on tlieir marcli for prayer
or exhortation, and especially on Sundays, if
opportunity offered, deliver tliem a lecture.
He also obliged his captains to pray aloud be-
fore their companies, and abused those foreign
officers who were not acquainted with the Rus-
sian prayers. To the love of his country he sa-
crificed every other sentiment, and consecrated
w^ithout reserve all the faculties of his nature.
So unbounded was the confidence of his soldiers
in his sanctity and capacity to lead them, that
they regarded him as the man chosen and sent
by the Almighty to lead them to victory. Rus-
sian soldiers under him never surrendered,
though surrounded by the enemy. They died
embracing the image of their saints, which was
attached as an amulet to their necks, but never
surrendered. Of Suwarrow himself it was said,
he "was never cold, afraid, nor defeated."
For this estimate of this great field-marshal of
Eussia, we have relied mainly on Fowler's
" Lives of the Sovereigns of Russia."
CHEISTIAI^ SOLDIEES. 401
GENERAL HAVELOCK.
Among tlie Indian heroes of tlie Britisli
army, wliere sliall we find a name more honored
than that of Havelock, and where shall we find
a character more like the Puritan, God-fearino*
ironsides of Cromwell ? A late review, by no
means fond of evangelical views, says of him :
"His relio^ion was no outward virtue, but a
deep, living, all pervading principle, which was
rooted in his very being, and tinged his whole
character. He was one no more ashamed of
pra3dng than of fighting; but would sing
psahns before all the army with as much cour-
age as he would lead it to victory." His were
the characteristicts of the true hero. An ear-
nest religious conviction united with great
military zeal and skill. His pietyin no way
detracted from his military duties. In the
British army there was none more resolute or
steadfast than Havelock. "And by a happy
accident," says the Westminster Review, " thcro
was allotted to him just such a duty as his
402 CHRISTIAIT SOLDIERS.
soul loved. It was a time of sore trial for
British India. The rebels were in the first
flush of success. Kegiment after regiment had
fallen away from our standard. The British
authority seemed to have dissolved all over
the Northwest. In the lower provinces there
were not more than some two thousand British
soldiers to uphold our dominion. There was a
general panic in Calcutta. It was then that
Havelock was called to the command of the
troops j)roceeding northward. The extraordi-
naiy series of efforts by which he retrieved
our fortunes, beat back the torrent of revolt,
wrought quick vengeance upon the fiend of
Bithoor, and finally, after nine victories gained
against armies numbering from ten to twenty
thousand men, he succeeded in fio-htins: his
way, in spite of every obstacle, to the Luck-
now Kesidency, and in averting its hourly im-
minent fall, is a portion of the history of this
mutiny most familiar to the British public. In
all this astonishing enter jDrise, pursued under
the burning: sun of an Indian summer, the
great merit of Havelock is this, that with un-
CHRISTIAK SOLDIEES. 403
flinching tenacity of purpose, lie stuck to his one
cLief object — tlie relief of Lucknow. From -tlie
task wliicli he set before himself at starting he
never turned aside. Onward, with iron stead-
fastness, he urged it through all hazards ; on-
ward, through rain, sun and fever; onward,
through countless hosts of a desperate enemy,
with the motto — ' Eemember Cawnpore — Re-
member the ladies !' No knight of romance
strove more earnestly for the Holy Grail — no
Crusader more stubbornly pursued his sacred
pilgrimage."
Havelock waited long for the work of his
life. "Toiling painfully and obscurely for
nearly half a century of the best years of his
life, the work came at last to him which he
Avas to do. He did it and died. He lived to
see the crowning of his noble purpose, but not
to receive the full meed of his country's appro-
bation. The brave spirit had worked out its
puny tenement, and S2:)ed to the God of its
faithful service. Since the death of Nelson and
of Moore, never death of any man has excited in
England such wide and deep sorrow — a sorrow
404 CHEISTIAN SOLDIERS.
almost domestic in every Englisli home." — •
Westminster Hevieiv on Indian Heroes.
Havelock was remarkable for his diligence,
sobriety, strength of intellect and soldierly
bearing, as well as for his i^iety. When com-
pelled to remain inactive, in the daily routine
of camp or 230st duty, he spent his time in the
study of languages, of military science and the
history of war, in the discipline of his troops
and in the religious instruction of the men
under his charge. He devoted himself so suc-
cessfully to the study of Oriental languages
that he became military interpreter in the
British army in Persia and Burmah. It is ob-
vious that one of the great evils of the military
service is the idle time that hangs on the hands
of young officers, at isolated or remote posts.
But it is within their power to turn all their
time to advantage. Havelock passed nearly
half a century in preparation for the crowning
events of his life. Twelve years between the
Burmese war and the Affghanistan war, he
spent in the daily routine of military duties.
But he lost no time. For it was then that
CHRISTIAN SOIDIERS. 405
Oriental langiinges and the science and liis-
toiy of ^var, and religious literature and tlie
work of Christian missions occupied his time.
^ Havelock ^vas proud of his profession and
loved active military service. The profile view
of any such man must therefore be manifestly
unjust. We must take a full face view, recon-
ciling as well as we can his Christian character
with his deeds as a warrior ; and to do this we
have first decided that the 2:>rofession of arms
is not in itself sinful, though we believe almost
all wars are unjustifiable, wicked and unneces-
sary. But we do not see how a subaltern offi-
cer or a private is an}^ more guilty for serving
in an unjustifiable war than tlie citizens who
pay taxes to support it, And besides, who- is
to decide on the character of a war ? Is every
private to sit in judgment on the war before he
consent's to obey orders and fight? This is
subversive at once of all government. The
powers that be are to be obeyed by Christians
in going to war as in other things, except
where their commands are clearly contrary to
the commandments of God. So the early
406 CIIRISTIAlsr SOLDIEES.
Christians understood the Gospel j)recepts on
this subject. Some of the best sohliers in the
armies of the pagan emperor of Rome were
devout Christians. They considered it their
duty as Christians to pray for them and to
fight for the empire.
General Havelock's greatness of character,
then, seems to us to have consisted of his
stronic common sense, vio;orous intellect and
abiding religious impressions from early youth.
The reli2:ious training^ of his mother is seen in
all his career. The child of six years under
his father's roof in Kent was father to the
man and to the hero dying in India. The man
of sixty was seen in his boyhood as through an
inserted telescope. His military greatness was
not a mere chance. Nor was it the growth of
an hour, but the ripe fruit of a lifetime of
severe study, of self-denial, of self-government,
obedience to orders, strict temperance, and of
arduous service for his country, both in the
camp and in the field. He was himself an ex-
ample of what he wished his men to be. A
most rigid disciplinarian for the drill, and in
CHRISTIAN SOLDIERS. 40 7
action lie led Lis men tlirouixli tlie most stlrrino;
scenes witli the coolness and accuracy of a
parade drill. The foundation of his great suc-
cess was laid in the fearlessness of his course
and in the open, honest, full-heartedness of his
relio:ious faith. '' It was not in Havelock's na-
ture to hide his colors. His uniform did not
more fully declare his profession as a military
man, than did his uniform Christian conduct,
his position in the church militant." " His en-
listment was as hearty under the banner of the
Lion of the tril)e of Judali as under the lion of
Britain. He is an illustrious example, both
from the lustre of his name and the lustre of his
course, and from the dark sky out of which his
star shone so steadily in its undimmed, ever-in-
creasing brilliance." — Boardmaii's Higher Life,
" Come and see how a Christian can die. I
have so ruled my life for more than forty years,
that when it came I might face death without
fear. I die happy and contented. Thank God
for my hope in the Saviour. We shall meet in
heaven." "I am not in the least afraid. To
die is gain. I die happy and contented." And
408 CHEISTIxVlS' SOLDIERS.
Lis List wcrds were to Lis L)ving son, wlio Lad
sLared ivitL Lim tLe perils of tLe battle-iiekl,
" Come." said Le, " come, my son, and see Low
a CLristian can die."
SncL is tLe end of an uprigLt and pious man.
In deatL tranquil, confident, Lopeful, joyous.
SucL is tLe end of tLose tliat live a life of faitli
upon tLe son of God, rejoicing in CLrist Jesus,
but witLout any confidence in tLe flesL.
GENEEAL JACKSOIs^.
" There gleams a coronet of light around our hero's brow."
Our sketcLes would be sadly defective without
a reference to General Andrew Jackson. Pliny,
in Lis letter to Atrius Clemens, says tliat Le
Lad " an opportunity to look into EupLrates,
tLe pLilosopLer, being frequently at Lis Louse,
and tLat Le knew Lim to be a sLining example
of polite learning." It was our privilege for a
considerable time to know General Jackson, and
to be often as guest and pastor in Lis Lospitable
mansion, and even sLare Lis own private cLam-
AEMY OF THE DEAD STILL SPEAKING. 43 B
and not in vain, for missives of love. And
General Jackson's ardent attacliment to his
wife, and reverence for his mother's memory,
is proverbial. JSTot long before his death, he
said : " Heaven will be no heaven for me, if I
do not meet my wife . there." 'No man loved
little children more fervently, nor enjoyed the
bliss of the family circle with greater satisfac-
tion. He never seemed more hapj)y than with
one of the little ones of his household on his
knee, or in his arms. His favorite recreation,
as long as he was able to mount his horse, was
to take one of the little children before him on
the saddle and ride over his farm.
Now^ w^hat such men as Vicars, Hammond,
Jackson and Havelock have done, others should
imitate. Indeed it seems to be a law^ of our
nature, that great men who are loving and
pure, tender and affectionate at home, are as
bold and fearless as lions abroad or in the
defence of their country and the inmates of
their homes. The names we have given prove
the possibility and illustrate the imperative
duty of maintaining religious principles in the
19
434 AKJIY OF THE DEAD STILL SPEAKING.
camp as well as at liome, and sliow that sol-
diers should jDreserve the conjugal and parental
relations untarnished even to the ends of the
earth, or the utmost bounds of the ocean.
2. These cases illustrate, that mere human
virtues are not to he substituted for repentance
toward God and faith in Jesus Christ. Vir-
tuous and patriotic in the highest sense, unsel-
fish, benevolent, kind, forgiving, temperate,
truthful, sound-minded and right-hearted, and
full of deeds of greatest courage, yet faith in
Christ was added as the only way of salvation.
We have found Cornelius believing wifch all his
heart upon Christ as soon as he is j)reached to
him, and submitting himself to the righteous-
ness of God. And so did Havelock and Jack-
son. They believed in Christ and depended
upon him alone for salvation. By faith they
were justified and their sins forgiven. They
were accepted in the Beloved, and made com-
plete in Christ. Their example says, depend
not upon loyalty, patriotism and courage, nor
upon more than Eoman virtue. Be a good
father, a good neighbor, a faithful and tender
AR:^rY OF THE DEAD STHL SPEAKIXG. 435
liusLand, a good citizen, but depend not upon
'tLese tilings for justification in tlie siglit of
God. When you are all these, you have no
merit at all. You are still a sinner ag^ainst
God, and must acce})t of pardon through his
Son Jesus Christ. You must take him as he is
offered in the Gospel, a j^rophet, j)i'iest and
king, a complete, all-mighty, willing Saviour.
" The blood of Christ," and " the merits of aton-
ing blood " and " the sufferings of the Son of
God for us sinners," were favorite expressions of
both Havelock and Jackson.
3. We learn from these cases, tliat opposition
to religion^ and even perseciition for our faitl}^
must not cause us to deny it. Joseph of Arima-
thea, the centurions of Capernaum, of the
Crucifixion and of Cesarea, w^ere under pecu-
liar temptations to deny Jesus ; but they felt
their obligations to him to be paramount to all
others. Xor are our modern military heroes
wanting in moral courage. Whenever Have-
lock's convictions of duty were ascertained, no
sarcasm, nor contempt, nor sting of the scoffer,
nor charge of fanaticism, or of pietism, could
436 AEMY OF THE DEAD STILL SPEAKESTG.
move him from doing liis duty. Obedience to
God was liis highest standard. It was his con
stant effort to preserve a conscience void of
offence toward Grod and toward man. And
when he was reproached with being a fanatical
Baptist, a ranting Methodist, a pietist, the Go-
vernor-General of India examined the charges,
and Avas so delighted with the discij^line and
influence he had over his men, that he said he
wished to God Havelock had baptized the
whole army.
And General Jackson not only ahvays main-
tained a high regard for the Bible, the Church
and her ministers and ordinances, but he was
always ready to avow his convictions in their
behalf. He was never ashamed of the catechism
of his mother, nor of the religion of his wife.
" The holy Sabbath," said he, " is ordained by
God, and set apart to be devoted to his wor-
ship and praise. I always keep it as God's
holy day. I always attended service at church
when I could."
4. Let us learn, wherever we are, or in what-
ever profession or business we may be, to try to
AEMY OF THE DJ:AD STILL SPEAKING. 437
do good. One centurion we find building a
synagogue for tlie Jews at Capernaum; ano-
ther, Cornelius, giving alms to all tlie people,
and another saving the life of Paul and other
prisoners from the violence of the soldiers.
And at the Shivey Dagoon of Rangoon and on
the beach after a shipwreck, and on the tented
field and at Jellalabad, and at' Cawnpore and
Lucknow, we have Havelock always a confessor
for Christ, and fervent in his prayers and
efforts to make him known to his soldiers.
x\nd when but a subaltern, we find him sacredly
devotino* one-tenth of his entire income to reli-
gious purposes. Though one of the bravest of
the brave, and one of the most active soldiers
for forty years, spent in camps and armies,
in marches and sieges, he always found time
for prayer and the reading of God's holy w^ord.
And so also the church at the Hermitage was
built, and rebuilt and kept up chiefly by the
contributions and influence of General Jackson.
He was not only generous as Hatem in his hos-
pitalities, but his purse was always open for
the support of ministers of the Gospel. He
438 AEMY or THE DEAD 'STILL SPEAKI^-G.
never was appealed to in vain for the poor, or
for aid to support tlie worship of God. Gen-
erosity is closely allied with bravery.
5. These histories teach us to be catliolic in
.our feelings. The learned professions and the
studies and pursuits of military and naval
science, travel and acquaintance with mankind
have a tendency to liberalize our ideas, but
this is perhaps preeminently so with soldiers
and sailors. In the almsgivings of Cornelius,
the synagogue built at Capernaum for the Jew^s
by a Roman centurion, and the kindness of
Julius toward Paul, we have instances of vic-
tory over national prejudices and all narrow-
ness of mind. Now while we have no sympa-
thy with indifferentism or latitudinarianism,
we do hold it to be a high Christian duty to
love and fellowship all who love our Lord Je-
sus Christ in sincerity. We have no sympa-
thy with an exclusive, intolerant bigotry.
Wherever the sj^irit of Christ is, there we
acknowledge Christ himself; and we know
that if we have not the spirit of Christ we are
none of his, A happy instance of the catho-
AEMY OF THE DEAD STILL SPEAKING. 43^
licity of General Havelock is found in Ms fel-
lowship witli tlie Presbyterians of tlie Free
Cliurcli of Scotland at Bombay, witli tlie mem-
bers of which he delighted to worship. " He
took a part in their prayer-meetings, and his
Hand and purse were both open to assist them
in carrying out their various plans for the edu-
cation and religious instruction of the natives.
Havelock was wholly destitute of that narrow
sectarian prejudice which impairs^ the excellence
of so many even true Christians. He communea
with all evangelical denominations^ and regard-
ed creeds as of small consequence com]yared
with true ])iety. Once in a meeting at Bom-
bay, this question of denomination being re-
ferred to, he explained fully and freely his
views. Though he ^ should part,' he said, ' with
his Baptist principles only with his life, he was
willing cordially to fraternize with every Chris-
tian who held by the Head, and was serving
the Bedeemer in sincerity and truth. And
here he would protest against its being alleged,
as adversaries would insinuate, that when men
of various denominations met as this evening,
440 AEMY OF THE DEAD STILL SPEAKLISra
in a feeling of brotlierliood, tliey could only do
this by paring down to tlie smallest portion,
tlie mass of his religion; on the contrary, he
conceived that all brought with them their
faith in all its strength and vitality. They
left, indeed, he thought, at the door of the
place of assembly, the husks and shell of their
creed, but brought into the midst of their breth-
ren the precious kernel. They laid aside, for
a moment, at the threshold, the canons, and
articles, and formularies of their section of
Christianity, but carried along with them, up
to the table at which he was speaking, the very
essence and quintessence of their religion.' " —
Headleifs Life of Havelock.
Such feelino-s we believe are common with
enlightened minds, but especially so with
brave men. They love piety better than creed.
No man disliked petty jealousies and narrow
sectarian feelings and denominational shibbo-
leths more cordially than General Jackson.
Though a Presbyterian by birth, education, con-
viction and preference, both as to doctrines and
modes of worship — as to faith and church
AEMY OF THE DEAD STILL SPEAKING. 441
order and government — still liis views on reli-
gious subjects were truly broad and catholic.
No man was "more ardently devoted to religious
freedom, nor more tolerant of the rights of con-
science.
6. Let us learn that no circumstances, how-
ever unfavorable to pious efforts, are a suffi-
cient excuse for neglecting personal religion.
The Koman centurion of Capernaum and of
Cesarea were remarkable for their attention to
their households. Their education, position,
and profession were much in the way of their
devotion to God, yet we find them overcoming
every obstacle. And surely no man could
have greater turmoil and care than Havelock
had in Affghanistan and Oude, yet his religious
habits were kept up without intermission. He
was not a day without his Bible, and often en-
gaged not only in silent prayer, but in its out-
ward act. It was a special object with him,
somehow or other, to be left alone both morning
and evening, that he might bow down and wor-
ship God. He was constantly at church or chapel
whenever an opportunity was offered. The
442 ARMY OF THE DEAD STILL SPEAKI:N^G.
first tiling everywliere witli him was tlie Idiig
dom of God and liis rio^liteousness. His whole
life, and liis death declare that " where there is
a will to serve God, there is a way." Vicars
and Hammond also found time for much pious
meditation upon God's Word. And we have
seen also that General Jackson was never with-
out his Bible, and always attended church
when he could. Surely, then, the distractions
of business, the urgencies of a learned profession,
and even the anxieties of the tent and of the
battle-field, are no excuse for neglecting the one
thing needful. What has been done may be
done again — may be done by American sol-
diers.
The speaking dead, the voices from glory, all
-" Remind us,
We can make our lives sublime,
And departing, leave behind us
Footprints on the sands of time —
"Footprints, that perhaps another,
Sailing o'er life's solemn main,
A forlorn and shipwrecked brother,
Seeing, shall take heart again.
AEMY OF TUE DEAD STILL SPEAKING. 443
" Let us, then, be up and doing,
With a heart for any fate.
Still achieving, still pursuing,
Learn to labor and to wait,"
THE E Is^ D ,
Princeton Theological Seminat7 Libraries
1 1012 01208 0570
DATE DUE
^JWBBI
B^^HMMMuip.
-^^,Sif^^
w
HIGHSMITH#45115
"/'^'•^''M.^.•■■'^^■ *
^vr
J ' .
' ''/■>(.